home *** CD-ROM | disk | FTP | other *** search
Text File | 1993-09-16 | 428.0 KB | 8,088 lines |
- #
-
-
- INTRODUCTION - MIND SEX
-
- The sole purpose of this book is to offer readers the oppor-
- tunity to improve their sex lives and increase their excitement
- through the use of hypnotic techniques. Working under the premise
- that variety is the spice of life, it is hoped that this addi-
- tional avenue will provide all of the variety you will ever need.
- Additionally, improved relaxation lends itself to increased self
- awareness. You can learn techniques that will increase your
- capacity to become relaxed. Apprehension often causes sexual mal-
- functions such as impotence or frigidity. Acquired relaxation
- techniques reduce and often eliminate the problem.
-
- Each of us have different ideas about sexuality and sen-
- suality. Different things turn on different people. The question
- of normalcy surfaces when we consider that our respective life-
- styles may vary from those of our neighbors. What is normal in
- sex? Perhaps the question might be, what is right or wrong in
- sex? I strongly believe that the answer to what is right or wrong
- will differ from one person to another. There should be one rule.
- That which hurts no one is, in fact, right if it turns us on and
- improves our sex life.
-
- How does hypnosis enter the picture? In a word, the answer
- is the "mind;" that wonderful entity that can make the most of an
- otherwise physical response. It has been suggested that the most
- vital sex organ in the body is the mind. Why hypnosis? The
- answer, in part, may be safety, but surely it is excitement.
-
- Our world is vastly different than it used to be. Alterna-
- tive lifestyles have been adopted throughout history that incor-
- porate such things as partner exchanges, prostitution, massage
- parlors, masturbation, voyeurism, cross-dressing, the singles bar
- scene and the like.
-
- Many of these very exciting things have become increasingly
- dangerous and never wholly accepted by society. With disease at
- an all time high and crime growing by leaps and bounds, we have
- reason for concern. Many times we find that the realization of
- our fantasies is much less exciting than we originally an-
- ticipated. Oftentimes we realize that the fantasy was much better
- than reality. It may have too high a price tag as well. Some dis-
- eases that exist today are deadly. There is no second chance.
-
- The "seedy" world, that contains much of the excitement we
- seek, often provides an atmosphere conducive to crime. An example
- of this is being robbed by a prostitute or pimp. Yet other con-
- cerns present themselves in that some exciting things are not so-
- cially acceptable. Voyeurism can land us in jail. Being seen
- walking out of an adult book store or movie can be embarrassing.
-
- These and numerous other fears restrict our approach to in-
- creased excitement. However, if we had the ability to create any
- situation we want, there is no end to our excitement and sexual
- growth. It is not just imagination. It is indeed very real. Hyp-
- nosis offers us this ability.
-
- What can be done with hypnosis? The answer is virtually any-
- thing and everything. Our sexual partner can become someone else.
- He or she can look different, sound different, smell different,
- taste different and feel different. It is the variety that ex-
- cites us so much. The variety is endless. Have you ever made love
- on a secluded beach, under a hot sun, with blue sky, waves slap-
- ping against a shore of soft white sand? You can.
-
- How would you like to watch your spouse have sex with two
- other people? Would some of you readers enjoy watching your
- spouse and your best friend performing oral sex on one another?
- Your best friend wouldn't even have to know. Group sex is a snap
- through hypnosis. There can be an endless number of new people in
- your life. All of them would be absolutely safe and disease-free.
- Each of them would be exciting and know your most erotic desires.
- Any of them could turn you on like you have never been turned on
- before.
-
- Some men can have difficulty with premature ejaculation or
- perceived impotence. There has always been concern by, for and
- about the frigid woman. If these problems are inventions of the
- mind, they can be corrected. Many women claim that they have
- never had a legitimate orgasm. Most women can learn to have won-
- derful orgasms using hypnotic techniques. I have seen many situa-
- tions where a person can lengthen the actual orgasm by as much as
- four to five times. Their climax just seems to go on and on. The
- mind controls most of these functions. If you can learn to con-
- trol your own mind, or control it with the help of another, the
- possibilities are endless.
-
- What I hope to demonstrate by the stories in this book are
- some of the wonderful things that have, in fact, occurred. They
- will also give the reader food for thought. Additionally, they
- should serve the purpose of so many stories of a similar nature.
- They may turn you on. I hope so.
-
- All of the specific techniques of hypnosis can not be ad-
- dressed in this book. Some patterns of self hypnosis are in-
- cluded. There are many manuals, abstracts and text books avail-
- able on the subject at your public library or at your local
- bookstore. It is also becoming common to seek the assistance of a
- professional clinical hypnotist to teach you and/or your partner
- self hypnosis.
-
- After you have achieved the ability to do so, your task may
- be to improve your hypnotic abilities. There is no end to what
- can be accomplished. Once you have had the occasion to read this
- material, you may become interested enough in the benefits of
- hypnosis to acquire the skills necessary to make hypnosis a part
- of your life and that of your partner.
-
- Each reader is WARNED that the unlawful use of hypnosis can
- subject the user to criminal and civil penalties. Use it wisely
- and with the permission of your partner. You will find nothing
- that will give you as much pleasure and satisfaction. You will
- find no other avenue that is as safe or exciting in this ever-
- changing world as Hypnosex.
-
- Techniques for self hypnosis have been included. These will
- provide a better understanding of hypnosis and a foundation on
- which you may build. You will find these in the appendix. The key
- to mastering these techniques is practice. You will get as much
- out of it as you put into it.
-
-
- CHAPTER ONE - MIND SEX
-
- Jim wondered whether he was unusual in terms of his sexual
- fantasies. He had married his childhood sweetheart when they were
- both relatively young. He and Peggy had started going together
- when he was seventeen and she fifteen. They were married at
- twenty-one and nineteen respectively. After about a year's mar-
- riage, Jim began his fantasies about Peggy making love to another
- man. He never really analyzed why this idea excited him. All he
- knew was that his cock became eight inches of rock hard sex when-
- ever he thought of it.
-
- He wondered how he might be able to broach the topic with
- Peggy without offending her. Their regular sex life was rather
- exciting. They fucked often and with a fervor. She was a fox. Her
- height was about 5'3" and she weighed about 120 pounds. She had
- great tits that filled a 34 C bra without trouble. With a rather
- small waste, she sported the lovely undulating pair of buttocks
- that rippled so nicely when she walked. Needless to say, Jim's
- mind worked overtime when it came to his libido.
-
- Jim tried some of the traditional approaches like attending
- X-Rated movies and playing touch and go with some of their
- friends. She never found any of his friends exciting enough to
- respond or say anything that would suggest she wanted to fuck any
- of them. Then one day she returned home after working the after-
- noon shift at a local assembly plant. She indicated that Ray, a
- guy that worked on her line, was teasing her about her jeans
- being too tight. She asked Jim if he thought that Ray was right.
- Jim indicated that Ray probably was just admiring her and was
- likely hitting on her. Much to Jim's surprise she showed a big
- smile and said that if that were the case, that would be nice.
-
- Jim questioned her as to whether that excited her. She
- responded that she was married and didn't allow herself to think
- about it. He assured her that it wouldn't bother him if she got
- excited about another man being interested in her. She seemed
- surprised and wondered aloud if that wouldn't make Jim jealous.
- Jim reassured her that he would be a little jealous, but told her
- that it excited him to hear that other men found her sexually ap-
- pealing. That pretty much started their dialog about threesomes
- and open marriages.
-
- Jim had a few short-termed affairs in the first several
- years of marriage, but he was never able to convince Peggy that
- she should feel free to try some strange cock. Peggy had the
- chance to interact with Ray on several occasions at work. It all
- seemed relatively innocent but exciting. He would make the oppor-
- tunity to spend more time in her area. Now and then he would
- brush up against her ample breasts or "accidentally" bump into
- her and make sure that his thick young cock pressed against her
- hot ass. At first she thought that these were just coincidental
- movements. As time went on, she noticed that his "accidents" were
- accompanied by delays. He would time his efforts so he could
- touch Peggy's heavy breasts in passing or linger when his penis
- was in close proximity to her tight fanny. He would frequently
- make sexual references about her nipples showing through her
- clothes or the tightness of her clothing. It was becoming more
- and more exciting. Peggy began to want Ray. She wanted to see the
- difference between his cock and Jims. She wanted to feel his lips
- on her swollen nipples; his strong hands on her naked buttocks.
-
- One day, while Peggy was at work, she decided to meet Ray
- after work and see what developed. He had asked her several times
- to stop and have a drink with him, but she always made up some
- excuse not to meet him. When she had mentioned to Jim that she
- would like to stop with him after work, Jim casually responded by
- saying that it would be fine with him. He didn't want to show too
- much excitement for fear of scarring Peggy off.
-
- Jim's cock was harder than nineteen dollars worth of jaw
- breakers the entire evening. His mind wandered and he was sure
- that Peggy would come home and tell him this wonderful story
- about Ray fucking her brains out. He envisioned Ray undressing
- her; lifting her heavy breasts and pouting nipples to his mouth;
- squeezing her taunt buttocks as he drove his huge cock into her
- honey pot. Both she and Jim were disappointed when Ray did meet
- with her after work, and he was so high on some drug that she be-
- came frightened and left. She decided never to see Ray again.
-
- On another occasion, Peggy announced to Jim that Marty, an
- old high school friend of theirs, would be in town the following
- week. Marty was a close friend of her brother and had spent quite
- a bit of time at her home when she was a school girl. As the con-
- versation developed, Peggy shared with Jim that she had always
- had a crush on Marty. He was an extremely good looking man, very
- sophisticated and always treated Peggy very affectionately. Jim
- once again got his hopes up. He wanted Peggy to experience more
- in life. He suggested that when Marty came into town she should
- consider going out with Marty and her brother for old time's
- sake. He didn't want to go himself because he always seemed to
- intimidate most people that he went to school with because of his
- muscular appearance. He decided that he would have a convenient
- excuse when the time came.
-
- The time did come and Peggy had accepted an invitation to go
- out with her brother and Marty to a local dance lounge. Jim
- hadn't seen her primp like this in a long time. She entered the
- living room to ask for his comments or approval. Jim was pleased
- by what he saw. She wore a lovely white sweater which accentuated
- her beautiful breasts and a pair of yellow slacks that framed her
- smooth, undulating buttocks. Jim indicated that he had a great
- deal of work to catch up on for a meeting on Monday. Soon a horn
- sounded in the driveway. It was Peggy's brother Tim. Peggy gave
- Jim a kiss and hurried to the waiting car.
-
- Fantasies of the potential experiences permeated Jim's
- thoughts. If Peggy and Marty could only have a little time alone,
- he was sure that she would be able to break fear's icy grip and
- experience something new. Jim could feel his cock develop girth
- and length as his thoughts drove wildly to the moments he wished
- for Peggy. He would have to wait to see the expression on Peggy's
- face when she returned. This would tell him if anything wonderful
- happened.
-
- Jim waited as long as he could and fell asleep in a chair as
- he read. He had difficulty comprehending much of what was occur-
- ring in his novel because his thoughts continued to return to
- Peggy and Marty. Awakened by the sound of the door opening, Jim
- stirred in his chair. He could hear Peggy kicking off her shoes
- and fumbling around in the dining room. Soon she entered the
- living room and was surprised to see Jim awake. She apologized
- for being so late. Jim noticed that her clothing was a bit
- disheveled. Her sweater was slightly twisted and one leg of her
- slacks appeared to have an extra crease or two. A distorted
- little smile came over Peggy's face as she noticed Jim checking
- her out. "Yes, I had a good time honey," she stated with a little
- chuckle.
-
- "Well, how good?" Jim inquired as he tried to wipe the sleep
- out of his eyes. Peggy chuckled again as she pulled her sweater
- off on her way to the bedroom. Jim extracted himself from his
- chair and followed Peggy waiting for additional information. "Do
- you want a glass of wine honey?" Jim asked as he turned out the
- living room lights.
-
- "If you'll have one with me. I'm going to jump into the
- shower. I'll be right out," Peggy seemed to be avoiding Jim's
- eyes. Jim poured two glasses of white wine and headed for the
- bedroom. He could hear the shower water running and approached
- the bathroom. The door was partially open, and in the large mir-
- ror he could see Peggy through the frosted glass panel. Her hands
- were roaming her lovely body. He couldn't help but to watch her
- hands traveling from her bounteous breasts, down her stomach to
- her delta of pubic hair. He felt his cock begin to stir once
- again. Jim returned to the bedroom and placed Peggy's wine on the
- night stand. Removing his clothing, he reached for his pajamas
- and put on the bottoms. He lit a cigarette, took a long drag and
- sipped his wine before reclining on the fresh sheets.
-
- Peggy soon appeared in the doorway wiping the remaining
- droplets of water from her soft, pink skin. After a lot of small
- talk about where they went and what they did, Peggy could see
- that Jim was fishing for details. He was anxious to hear if Peggy
- was able to broaden her horizons. "Did you have a chance to spend
- any time with Marty alone?" Jim finally asked.
-
- "Tim begged off and Marty took me to breakfast and then
- drove me home. You know, I never know quite how to take you Jim.
- I know you have told me time and time again that you don't mind
- if I have an affair, but sometimes I think you're just trying to
- see if I would cheat on you," Peggy commented.
-
- "It can't be cheating if I approve, now can it?" Jim
- returned. "I would like to see you do something a little risky.
- Every time we talk about it we both get so damn excited. What can
- be wrong with that?"
-
- "We danced. Marty and I danced several slow dances, and it
- was exciting as hell. That's one of the reasons I had to take a
- shower. I was soaking wet Jim," Peggy confessed.
-
- "Oh honey, tell me all about it. I want to get excited
- myself. I'm already excited for you. Please, tell me everything;
- every time he touched you. Tell me how excited you were," said
- Jim.
-
- "It was wonderful honey. He is better looking today than he
- was when we were kids. He asked me to dance early in the night. I
- got excited just thinking about being held by him. He held me
- closely, and I could feel my nipples getting hard as my breasts
- were crushed against his chest. Every now and then, as we danced,
- he put his hand on my ass and just petted it. When he did that I
- could feel myself uncontrollably pressing my pussy against him,"
- Peggy offered as she replaced Jim's hand on his cock with her
- own. "Jim your cock hasn't been this hard in a long time.
-
- "When I pressed my pussy against him, I could feel his dick
- getting harder. He pulled back from me, looked down at my breasts
- and then back into my eyes. He got the most devilish smile on his
- face. Then he pressed his cock into my belly even harder. I
- wanted to come right there. We danced several times after that
- and each time his rod seemed to get harder. I was thinking about
- putting it in my mouth and sitting on it. My brother suggested
- that we remember that I was married and we were in public. I
- decided to take the edge off somewhat by behaving and not fucking
- Marty right there in front of everyone. Tim suggested that it was
- late and we should leave. Marty called him a party-pooper and
- asked him to stick around for a while. Tim insisted that he had
- to get up early so Marty offered to drop me off. We had a lot to
- talk about over breakfast, but the ride home was frightfully
- quiet.
-
- "Did you at least get a chance to give him a decent kiss
- good-night?" Jim inquired with a smile.
-
- "We have been out in the driveway for the last two hours
- Jim. It was one of the hottest times that I can remember. When we
- got here he told me that this night was one of the most enjoyable
- nights that he had in a long time. He also told me that he en-
- joyed holding me while we were dancing, and that he had always
- wanted to hold me like that. Then he reached over and kissed me.
- My head was spinning. It wasn't too long before his hands were
- under my sweater. He gently cupped my breasts and then unsnapped
- my bra. He lifted my sweater and began sucking on my nipples. I
- thought my head would explode.
-
- "Jim; I touched another man's cock. I unzipped his pants,
- and I touched his cock," Peggy said cautiously as she watched Jim
- for a response. Jim grabbed her and began to squeeze her large
- pink-nippled breasts. His tongue dove into her mouth, and he
- began rubbing his thick rod against the soft skin of her hip.
- This took much of the fear out of Peggy. She continued to tell
- Jim about the feel of another man's cock; the fluid that was
- leaking out of the head of his raging penis; the weight of his
- hairy balls. She went on to say that Marty had slipped his hand
- down inside of her slacks and touched her thickly covered pussy;
- the way he moved his hands through her wet cavern; first one
- finger; then another; finally three fingers searching inside of
- her hot, wet love hole.
-
- "Did you suck his cock?" Jim whispered, with eyes closed, as
- Peggy's hand continued to travel over his gigantic shaft.
-
- "No honey. I got scarred. I finally stopped him and told him
- that I didn't know if I was ready. I knew I was ready, but I
- didn't want to take the chance that you would be upset. I also
- knew that this fuckn' mammy-jammer cock of yours was sitting here
- waiting for me if I needed it. I explained to Marty that I did
- want him to fuck me, and that I did want to suck his cock. I told
- him that one day we would probably be able to get together, but I
- just needed time.
-
- "Well you can see that I am not upset with you. I would have
- loved to see his wet bone sliding in and out of your greasy hole.
- Now that you know that, please feel comfortable with doing what
- you want to do. I just want you to be happy and hot," Jim
- breathed into her ear.
-
- "I did get to see him come Jim. He asked me if I would mind
- if he got off so his balls wouldn't blow up. I just smiled and
- nodded my head. I kissed him while he stroked his cock and played
- with my titties. He started to tense up, and I moved back to
- watch. His cock went off, and thick gobs of come shot out hitting
- the dash board. It was great to see that someone wanted me so
- badly that their cock fluid was spilt so freely. Christ, what a
- turn on. One day I would like to fuck him Jim. I just needed to
- see your reaction to what has occurred already. I would even like
- you to be able to watch it.
-
- Peggy and Jim fucked until the sun came up. The next night
- and several thereafter, Jim asked Peggy to tell him the story
- again. Each time she told it was like the first. Each time they
- made love afterward was better.
-
- Jim began answering ads in swinger's magazines in hopes that
- he could convince Peggy to meet with other couples. She was
- afraid and declined. Jim didn't let that stop him. He met with
- several couples over the next couple of years. Periodically, he
- would share some of his adventures with Peggy, and their sex was
- great due to the heightened libidos that result from such ac-
- tivity. Year after year Jim would try new ways to lure Peggy into
- experimenting with other men. Jim had to find another way.
-
- Hypnosis was always a hobby of Jim. He was somewhat of a in-
- tellectual and enjoyed reading about such things. He read every-
- thing that he could get his hands on about hypnosis. As a result
- of his job, he was enabled to attend several seminars on clinical
- hypnosis. He got rather good at induction techniques, and Peggy
- agreed to be one of his subjects. This began by simple experi-
- ments like temperature control of the body, relaxation techniques
- and similar approaches. Then one day, Jim decided to take hyp-
- nosis to the bedroom. He gave Peggy the suggestion that she was
- lying on a warm beach. The gulls were crying, the waves were
- caressing the shoreline and the sun was licking her lovely, nude
- body.
-
- He watched her as she lay on the bed. Her lovely pink
- nipples became hard and reached for the mind-orchestrated sun.
- Her legs opened to receive that warmth on her hair-covered pussy.
- She was told to enjoy herself and not to concern herself about
- anything as there was no one around and she had her "island" to
- herself. Jim assured her that she could enjoy herself, and that
- he would wake her after an enjoyable time in the sun. Jim con-
- tinued to watch, his thick cock becoming harder and longer than
- he ever remembered. His mind was working overtime as well. As he
- watcher her turn over to permit the rays of the hot sun on her
- soft, firm buttocks, his mind began to wonder about what other
- "miracles" could be accomplished through hypnosis.
-
- That night ended in Jim having three climaxes. One occurred
- while he watched Peggy masturbate while lying on the secluded
- beach. He didn't even touch his straining penis. As his eyes
- caressed Peggy's wriggling body, his cock began to erupt into one
- of the most wonderful climaxes in memory. He buried his blood-
- engorged penis in his wife's waiting cunt two times that night.
- Each time he came was like the first. He had found one of the
- most exciting approaches to sex he had ever dreamed of. When he
- woke Peggy, he offered her a post hypnotic suggestion that she
- would be well rested and remember everything.
-
- About a week went by. Jim continued to analyze his "new sex
- tool" and try to think of other exciting uses. The following
- Friday night, he planned to take Peggy on her first experimental
- strange experience. They watched TV for a couple of hours after
- they got home from work. He tried to think of things to talk
- about that would put her in the right frame of mind for sex, and
- his mind was put to the task of how he would introduce this
- sleep-affair. Soon it was late enough that he could suggest they
- go to bed. Teeth were brushed, PJ's were donned and they took
- their respective places in bed. He had established a post hyp-
- notic suggestion to reduce the time required to put her into a
- trance. He merely had to snap his fingers twice.
-
- As they settled in, he looked at her in the eyes and snapped
- his fingers, telling her to sleep deeply. Her eyes closed, and
- Jim could see her body begin to melt into a deep relaxation. He
- indicated to her that she was in a large hotel in Florida and
- that she had made an appointment for a body massage. She would
- find herself in the massage room at the hotel. She was advised to
- open her eyes, remove her clothing and place a towel over herself
- when Jim snapped his fingers once. He further indicated to Peggy
- that an attractive man would come through the door and it was his
- job to give her a full body massage. Jim snapped his fingers and
- left the room.
-
- Jim was shaking as he peered through the crack he con-
- veniently left in the almost closed door. He saw Peggy get out of
- the bed, remove the top of her night clothes. Her breasts looked
- glorious and he wished that another man could see their heavy
- bounce and her pouting pink nipples. She laid the top aside. Her
- thumbs were placed inside the waistband of her bottoms, and she
- slid them down over her soft buttocks. Jim's cock was already
- rock-hard. Peggy laid down on the bed and pulled a towel over
- herself in a modest fashion, waiting for the man who would give
- her a massage. Jim could only wonder what was going through her
- head.
-
- He entered the room sheepishly, towel over his arm and a
- slight smile on his face. He said hello to Peggy, and she shyly
- returned his smile and said hello. Jim asked her if she was ready
- for her massage, and she said that she was. He asked her if she
- liked it soft or hard. She responded by telling him to use his
- own discretion. Jim asked her to turn over on her belly. She did
- so as he held the towel in place. He turned the towel down a
- couple of turns and placed baby oil on her upper back. As his
- hands began to work the oil into her tense body, he felt as
- though he was touching a strange body. His cock continued to
- strain and he could feel the preparatory fluids seep from the
- head of his hard cock. Peggy's moans told Jim that she was get-
- ting a great deal of satisfaction out of his efforts.
-
- More and more the towel was lowered. He could see the swell
- of the sides of her ample breasts as she held her hair out of the
- way of the baby oil. Her moans continued as his hands moved lower
- and lower down her back. Soon the towel was moved down to expose
- half of her buttocks. His hands ventured onto these beautiful
- mounds of flesh, and his mind spoke to him of the "strange" body
- that he was touching. As his hands began to massage this new
- flesh without objection, he reached for more oil. The oil ran
- down into the cleft between these glorious mounds. His hand
- quickly reached to capture the oil to work it into this bouncing
- flesh. Peggy's moans began to increase in volume.
-
- Jim put oil on the backs of her thighs and massaged this in.
- With each swipe of his hand he moved closer and closer to the
- heated area between her legs. Her hips raised each time his hands
- approached her hot cunt. Finally, Jim dipped down into this area,
- and his slippery hand touched the oil drenched lips of her cunt.
- With this, Peggy pressed her face into the pillow and pressed her
- pussy against Jim's wet hand. For fear of scarring her with this
- new experience, he moved his hand back to her buttocks to con-
- tinue his assault. After a short time, he instructed her to turn
- over. This was the test. There would be a "strange man" looking
- into her face.
-
- Peggy turned over but kept her eyes closed as Jim held the
- towel in place for her. She again placed her arms over her head
- and had a peaceful look on her face. By this time Jim's pants
- were wet from his preparatory emissions. He rolled down the towel
- to expose Peggy's heavy breasts. Her juicy nipples remained hard
- and pert. Jim poured oil in the valley between her large breasts.
- Before it would flow off her body, his hands were on the lovely,
- spongy tits. He slowly began to manipulate the firm breasts.
- Peggy's eyes snapped open and looked at Jim. He gave her a slight
- smile and returned his gaze to the moving tits. She could not
- restrain her pleasure. Her moans escaped her lips in soft tones
- as her breathing began to shorten. Jim's hands lingered over her
- thick nipples as his thumbs and forefingers gently pinched and
- manipulated these love zones.
-
- Peggy began grinding her hot ass into the sheets and strain-
- ing her breasts higher and higher. Jim put oil now on her belly
- and began gently rubbing it in. His eyes were blessed as he saw
- the oil run down her belly into the fluffy pubic hair covering
- her already greasy slit. One hand continued working her breasts
- as the other moved down to her mound. He dipped periodically to
- her clit with the palm of his hand. At this, a loud moan escaped
- her lips as she reached for his hand and held it to her swollen
- pussy. Her eyes remained closed.
-
- Jim allowed a finger to slip inside of her hot cunt, and he
- could feel this tunnel tighten on his single finger. He worked it
- around and deeper into her love hole while his other hand
- remained on her heaving tits. She in turn grabbed her other
- breast and started to manipulate its stiff nipple. With this as-
- surance, Jim reached forward and placed his lips on the nipple he
- had been pinching. Her body jumped and her hands grabbed his head
- to insure against him moving it away. Jim put two more fingers
- inside of Peggy's swollen cunt and began to pump it as he manipu-
- lated her clit with his thumb. She began to climax and her body
- shook with convulsion after convulsion. After what seemed like
- five minutes, Peggy's body came to rest. With her eyes open she
- looked at this "strange man" and offered her thanks.
-
- Jim decided not to take it too far the first time. He washed
- the oil from Peggy's body and toweled her off. He again put her
- to sleep and left her with another post hypnotic suggestion to
- awaken feeling well rested and remember everything as a wonderful
- dream. The possibilities for the next adventure began to roll
- around in Jim's head almost immediately. What was next? I think
- you'll be delighted to see.
-
-
- CHAPTER TWO - MIND SEX
-
- The mild winter began to recline into the arms of an anxious
- spring. Jim opened the door to approach his car for the trip to
- his office, as his nostrils were welcomed by the fragrance of the
- changing season. His heart was light, and he had a bounce in his
- step. The conversation that occupied the previous evening was
- music to his ears.
-
- Marilyn, a computer bulletin board friend had agreed to meet
- him for the first time. She wanted to know more about the use of
- hypnosis in sex. They had shared many thoughts on previous eve-
- nings. Some were simply warm and friendly, and others were
- downright steaming. They had discussed everything from children
- and pets to jumping one another's bones.
-
- Jim and Marilyn had become rather close friends without ever
- having met one another. They had each teased from time to time
- about meeting one day, but Jim never really expected Marilyn to
- meet with him. Now she had agreed, and they were scheduled to see
- each other this evening in a local night spot at eight o'clock.
- They had some idea of how one another looked and a very good idea
- of what one another thought. He was anxious and hoped that she
- shared his excitement.
-
- The day seemed to last forever. Everything appeared to be
- moving in slow motion. His productivity for the day was, as a
- result, outstanding as he tried to occupy the struggling moments
- toward the end of the work day. Fridays were somewhat traditional
- in that he never went directly home after the work day's end. He
- would generally frequent a local downtown watering hole until
- about seven; remove to one of his favorite restaurants for a bite
- to eat; and visit one of several of the local hot spots around
- town.
-
- Jim arrived at the cafe at about five o'clock and sat in his
- favorite chair at the far corner of the bar. He greeted several
- friends as they entered and exchanged comments about the grueling
- week. He had a difficult time concentrating on the various con-
- versations because his mind was on Marilyn. Would she find him
- exciting?
-
- Seven-thirty had arrived. Jim paid his bill and rose to
- leave. His mind was dissecting the possibilities of the evening
- as he drove to Rascal's lounge. As he pulled into the broken
- black-topped parking lot he had visions of Marilyn's lovely nude
- body resting on his chest. He almost didn't see the attendant
- provided to direct him to available parking. His car rested well
- between two other chariots as he entered the lounge.
-
- Jim went through the doorway with eyes wide, searching for
- the evening's target. There was no single lady at the bar, so Jim
- selected a seat with a view of the entry way and ordered a drink.
- He noticed that his hands seemed to have a life of their own.
- They were shaking as he attempted to stir his grog. Furtive eyes
- continued to paint the doorway to the lounge and still no
- Marilyn. It was only ten minutes to eight and no need for con-
- cern. She would show.
-
- In a nonchalant manner, Jim allowed his eyes to travel
- throughout the bar. He wasn't sure but thought that a lovely
- young lady sitting with another man was checking him out rather
- well. Bright eyes sparkled from an angelic face. Jim couldn't
- help but notice her deep, dark and warm cleavage floating in
- waves, hugged by the material of a blood-red dress, as her
- shoulders moved back and forth. The curl of her generous lips and
- her bright smile teased Jim as she continued her conversation
- with the man next to her. Just his luck; here was a hot, sexy
- woman that seemed to have interest in him. Not only was she with
- another man, Jim was waiting for a woman that he had no idea of
- how she looked.
-
- He had trouble watching the entrance in anticipation of
- Marilyn. Each time his eyes moved to the door he was distracted
- by the lovely woman's breasts. They seemed to be calling to him.
- He continued to try to get this woman out of his mind, but she
- wouldn't stop sneaking glances as him. Suddenly, she rose from
- her bar stool and began walking toward the rest room. Jim's eyes
- were now drawn to her magnetic buttocks. The material of her
- dress seemed to massage each cheek of her undulating ass. Damn!
- He would love to drink her bath water just to see her dry off.
- Few times had he ever gotten an erection just looking at a woman
- in a bar. This was one of them.
-
- Jim's eyes returned to the door once again and he noticed
- the man that had been sitting with the object of his new interest
- was walking out of the lounge; apparently leaving. Jim almost
- hurt his neck as he spun his head back to see where the lovely
- lady in red was. Soon she returned from the rest room, leaned
- forward, said something to the bartender and began walking
- directly toward Jim.
-
- Her lovely breasts continued to dance slightly as she ap-
- proached. Jim wanted to look behind him to see if she was ap-
- proaching someone behind him but thought that would be obvious
- and make him look ridiculous. His eyes riveted on the rim of his
- glass to prevent him from looking like an idiot. Soon he heard a
- whispered, "is this seat taken?"
-
- "Nn nnno! Please do sit down. There isn't anyone sitting
- there," Jim heard himself fumble through the words. Damn, why did
- he sound like such a fool.
-
- The red dressed lady eased up to the bar and pulled her seat
- after her. After she was obviously well settled, Jim made half a
- motion to get up and fix her chair for her. Too late, he thought.
- "Are you waiting for someone?" she breathed to Jim.
-
- Now what was he going to say? The fragrance of her scent
- captured him, and he wanted to tell her that he had been waiting
- for her ever since the doctor first slapped his ass, forty-three
- years ago. He gagged on his words slightly, and then his mind
- snapped back to his intended purpose. He almost felt guilty that
- he was even thinking of this new lady, and he said, "Yes. I,m
- waiting for a friend."
-
- She rolled her shoulders once again and asked, "What is your
- friend's name Jim?"
-
- "Her name is...but... How did you know my name was Jim?" he
- returned, and then it began to sink in. "You can't be Marilyn!"
- He stuttered.
-
- Her smile grew to a full blown show of pearl delight. "When
- I left the house my name was Marilyn," she stated emphatically.
- "You're probably wondering what I was doing with that man that
- was sitting next to me. That was my cousin. I have to confess
- that I asked him to stop and have a drink with me so I would have
- a way out if you turned out to be a wild looking, sex-crazed
- maniac."
-
- Jim chuckled and nodded his head in a knowing way. "Well
- then, I have to assume that my looks didn't scare you too much."
-
- Her eyes diverted to the rim of the glass that the bartender
- brought over for her in a somewhat embarrassed fashion. "I'm
- sorry. I just never did anything like this before and didn't know
- what to expect."
-
- "No apologies necessary. If you were my cousin, I wouldn't
- want you to take any chances either. I'm glad you used your head,
- but you still don't know whether I'm a nut case or not," Jim of-
- fered.
-
- "Now that I have seen you, and I couple that with all of the
- conversations we've had, I feel pretty comfortable. You are a
- very attractive man. And I know you're a good man. I was just ap-
- prehensive, and now I'm not," she said softly. "
-
- There was music playing softly as they continued to get to
- know one another better. Suddenly, half way through an explana-
- tion of the repairs her car had undergone in the past week, she
- stopped and asked Jim if he would like to dance. Jim readily
- agreed and they approached the dance floor. As she preceded him,
- Jim couldn't help but to notice the rise and fall of each but-
- tock. He felt his manhood stir once again. The red material rose
- and fell as the ripple of each cheek pushed and pulled at the
- fabric.
-
- Having arrived at the small space offered for dancing,
- Marilyn turned and opened her arms to receive Jim. He could see
- her breasts rise to accentuate her cleavage. Her scent continued
- to arouse him. His hands encircled her lovely body and were
- blessed by the soft touch. She didn't waste any time getting
- close to Jim. Her curves melted into his body as they moved to
- the music. Marilyn pressed her ample breasts against his chest,
- and he could feel the heat of her pussy against his leg. It
- seemed as though she was trying to turn him on. Well, whether or
- not she was trying, it was happening.
-
- It became obvious to Marilyn that Jim was getting excited.
- His cock began to grow thick and long. He felt it pressing
- against his clothing almost to the point of embarrassment. He was
- intoxicated with the fact that as his thick cock grew, Marilyn
- was pressing herself harder against it. His courage grew with
- this thought, and he allowed his hand to drop to Marilyn's full
- buttocks. He smoothed the material of her dress and returned to
- the flesh of her ass to squeeze. As he did, a soft moan escaped
- Marilyn's lips and her pussy pressed against him once again. Soon
- the music came to an end, and they were forced to separate.
-
- Jim began to show signs of embarrassment as they returned to
- the bar, and then his pride took over. He hoped that some of the
- other patrons saw his rock-hard cock as he returned. He was proud
- of it. Marilyn stopped abruptly as they returned, and Jim ran
- into her tight ass with his erection. She looked over her
- shoulder and smiled. "I just wanted to make sure that you were
- still there."
-
- After they took their seats Jim indicated that it might be
- nice if they were able to go someplace that would be a little bit
- more private. Marilyn agreed. They finished their drinks, and Jim
- pulled her chair out so they could exit.
-
- "The kids are at my mom's, and I would love it if you would
- come over for a while Jim," Marilyn offered.
-
- "Are you sure it won't be any problem?" Jim inquired. Im-
- mediately he knew that he should have merely said that he would
- love to. Why would he take a chance like that? She might have
- re-thought the matter.
-
- "No. It's not a problem. I'm anxious to learn more about
- hypnosis and your adventures. It's pretty obvious that you have
- become rather proficient at snake charming," she offered with a
- cute smile as her eyes riveted on the front of his trousers.
-
- After assisting Marilyn into her car, Jim got into his and
- followed her. His mind was racing. He couldn't remember the last
- time that someone turned him on this much. He could almost see
- her dress rising over her head as she removed it for his intrud-
- ing gaze. He thought of her lovely buns, draped with only the
- sheerest of panties. He envisioned her soft pubic hairs furtively
- escaping the edge of her sex-soaked panties. He could smell her
- womanhood as her excitement increased. He wanted to make this
- woman part of him.
-
- Marilyn interrupted his mental adventure as she pulled into
- a driveway. Christ! He didn't even know which street he was on.
- His mind had obviously been elsewhere. He felt his heart begin-
- ning to beat more rapidly as he put his car in park and extin-
- guished his lights. After a quick check in the mirror to make
- sure that his hair didn't look like a squirrel he was out of the
- car and walking behind this lovely creature.
-
- She fitted the key into the lock and looked back over her
- shoulder in an inviting manner. Marilyn lowered her coat to a
- waiting chair and told Jim to make himself at home. "I think a
- drink would be in order. Why don't you see if you can put some
- nice music on. The CD's are right next to the player."
-
- "You must enjoy classical music. Three quarters of what you
- have is classical," Jim raised his voice to assure that Marilyn
- heard him. He selected several pieces, placed them into the CD
- changer and pushed the play button. Looking around the room, he
- was gratified to see that Marilyn's taste extended to her lovely
- furnishings. Soon she returned with a bottle of wine and two
- glasses.
-
- "I've always been partial to classical music Jim. I think
- you'll enjoy this wine. It's kind of hard to come by 'round these
- parts partner," she teased with a country drawl as she seated
- herself close to him. "Now how does this hypnosis work that you
- have talked so much about?"
-
- Jim explained that almost anything was possible with the use
- of hypnosis if the subject had the ability. The ability generally
- was referred to as somnambulism. Many people were very suggest-
- ible and could achieve wonderful results through hypnosis.
-
- "What kind of results Jim?" was her next question as she
- moved closer yet to him. He seemed to be trying to formulate an
- answer but encountered difficulty due to the closeness of her
- soft ample breasts.
-
- "You can be anyone you want. You can be with anyone you want
- to be with. You can be anywhere you want to be and feel as you
- wish for as long as you can physically stand it," he explained as
- his arm encircled her shoulders.
-
- "If I wanted to be with you, on a secluded beach, in the hot
- sun, with gulls overhead and waves lapping at the shore, could
- you make that happen?" she questioned with interest.
-
- "I really can't make anything happen for you Marilyn. You
- actually make what happens occur. Each of us has the ability, to
- one degree or another, to hypnotize ourselves. I would only be
- helping you through the process you don't quite understand," Jim
- explained.
-
- "Let's give it our best shot Jim. I would like to experience
- the scenario just as I outlined it. I want to be with you. I want
- it to be great and I want it to last," Marilyn pleaded.
-
- Jim took her through various relaxation stages and success-
- fully helped her to a deep trance state. He indicated to her that
- they had been marooned on a dessert island and that on a portable
- radio they heard that a rescue party was two days away from
- bringing them back to civilization. It would be night time and a
- nice camp fire had been built. When he snapped his fingers once,
- it would soon be daylight and the sun would be glorious; they
- would be totally alone. He gave her the suggestion that they had
- been attracted to one another during their sea voyage but hadn't
- the opportunity to connect.
-
- He further gave her a suggestion that she hadn't had sex in
- over six months and that she was absolutely insane with desire.
- Even if she masturbated she could not quench her thirst for sex.
- Jim told her that at the count of three she would awaken, find
- herself on an old boat seat that washed ashore and be a little
- cold from the night winds blowing off the water.
-
- She would experience a desire unlike she ever felt before.
- Each time she had an orgasm, it would take violent hold of her
- and last three times longer that she had ever experienced before.
- Her nipples would be so sensitive that she would shudder with the
- least touch. When she placed his cock in her mouth she would feel
- this intense pressure on her clitoris. The deeper she placed his
- rigid penis in her throat, the more intense the feeling in her
- hole would be.
-
- Jim asked her if she understood everything that he told her,
- and she acknowledged that she had with a nod of her head. He also
- told her that when he placed her head between his hands and
- kissed her on the forehead, she would awaken, feel wonderful and
- more satisfied than she had ever felt before. The next time that
- he snapped his fingers twice, while looking into her eyes, she
- would fall into a fast, deep sleep. So he began, "one, two,
- three."
-
- Marilyn sat on the couch that she perceived to be the boat
- seat. She had an utterly lost look on her face. Her arms crossed
- her chest in an effort to ward off the cold. She sheepishly in-
- quired, "do you think we will be OK until they arrive Jim?"
-
- "I'm sure we will be just fine. I don't think there are any
- dangerous animals on the prowl, I have built a nice fire and it
- will be daylight soon," he said.
-
- "Would you mind if I get out of these wet things and try to
- warm myself by the fire Jim. I'm a little embarrassed, but I
- don't want to get pneumonia," she pleaded shyly.
-
- Jim could only nod his consent. He had been waiting to see
- this lovely body all of his life. Marilyn got up and turned so
- that he could release her zipper. She removed the red dress, and
- Jim noticed the visible goose flesh as she did so. He had ob-
- viously helped her attain temperature hallucination. She was ac-
- tually chilly. Jim went over to a near-by arm chair and retrieved
- an afghan to place around her. By this time she had removed her
- bra but modestly kept her back to Jim. He placed the afghan
- around her shivering shoulders and drew her to him.
-
- Marilyn melted back into his arms and could feel his meat
- pressed against her warming buttocks. He felt her fumble a little
- and turn to look into his eyes. "You have been so very kind to
- me. This is absolutely frightening not knowing exactly when they
- will come for us," Marilyn whispered.
-
- Jim eased her down on the "boat seat" and gathered her to
- him to increase her warmth. His nose was blessed with the scent
- of her hair and the warmth of her body. Again their eyes met. Her
- mouth opened ever so slightly as her eyes began to close. Closer
- and closer their lips came to touching. At last he could feel her
- hot breath bleeding into his own lungs; a kiss of gratitude
- turned quickly into a kiss of passion and need. The afghan fell
- from her shoulders.
-
- Moments later his strong hands were on her body. Touching
- softly and moving on. Her back flexed as his hands moved slowly
- up and down its spine resting on her buttocks. She considered
- stopping, but she couldn't make herself. Her own hands began to
- experiment with the muscles of his body. She felt them ripple to
- her touch as a soft moan escaped his lips. This slight sound lit
- off lovely explosions in her head. His hands were on her thighs
- touching every inch as softly as an angel's kiss. She knew she
- was wet with anticipation and hunger. Uncontrollably, her hand
- soon found the hardness of the staff in his pants. Her control
- was gone and she didn't care.
-
- His hands were under her heavy breasts cupping and teasing
- her ripe, hard nipples. Once when she was a child she experienced
- a fever that was accompanied by a shivering phenomenon. As his
- fingers touched her dark pink nipples, this experience was
- relived. She began to press her wet, hairy mound into the seat
- for some simple relief from the mounting frustration. His tongue
- was on her neck tracing love notes. It then moved to her heaving
- swollen breasts.
-
- She felt teeth and lips on her blood-engorged nipples. Again
- a shivering took control of her body, and ripples of excitement
- thundered through her body. His hand traveled down to that moist,
- fragrant hole of her womanhood. Explosions went off in her head
- as his hand crept inside her panties to feel her slippery cunt.
- He inserted one finger inside her body and then another. In cir-
- cular motions he soon brought her to heaven. The bone shaking
- convulsions continued on and on. She had never experienced such
- an orgasm. Would there never be an end to this joy? She prayed
- there would not. Her jerking and moaning brought yet additional
- growth to his throbbing cock.
-
- As if drawn by a magnet, her lips traversed the distance be-
- tween his hairy chest and his huge staff. Soon she brought that
- gentle monster inside she mouth and teased it with delight. He
- was bone hard and bursting with excitement. Her soft mouth sucked
- him deep inside to her waiting throat. Something was happening to
- her. Up and down went her hungry mouth as her tongue gave him yet
- new pleasures. She couldn't seem to get enough of this warrior
- spear into her throat. Deeper and deeper she sucked the huge cock
- into her mouth until her lips brushed the depths of his public
- wire. With each inch her moans grew in volume and intensity.
-
- His head was spinning as he whispered in her ear that he had
- never had such tender bliss. The heat rising from her cunt was
- quite amazing. He took her swollen sex lips in his mouth and
- sucked and nibbled for minutes, his tongue teasing and probing.
- All the while, one of his hands was squeezing her buttocks with
- such strength it doubled her excitement. His other hand gently
- twisted one of her hard nipples. He sucked her sweet love juice
- and drank from her wriggling body, swallowing the divine cream
- with animal-like relish.
-
- Her soft pussy was going into spasms now, and he felt the
- muscles in her vagina grab for his teasing tongue as he lanced it
- into her tense body. Her smooth, rounded hips were jerking up and
- down as she attempted to shove as much cunt into his mouth as she
- possible could. Spreading her legs wide apart, he raised her but-
- tocks in his hands and kissed at her dripping fanny, his nose
- completely buried and lost in the dark, springy hairs of her
- mound.
-
- The lips of her sweet cunt were now spread very wide apart,
- in a way that completely exposed her deep, hot cavern, the soft
- lips of her slit parting and pulsing with desire. The pinkish
- flesh gleamed with her love juice, which trickled and oozed down
- her tunnel and greased everything ready for the fuck that she was
- dying for.
-
- Taking his fat, throbbing weapon in both hands, he took the
- tip and rubbed it all over the slippery opening of her slit,
- smearing it with her juices. She had the look of a hungry animal.
- She didn't want fucked any longer; she needed it. Lowering him-
- self on her body, he slid seven inches of cock into her eager
- hole. Her cunt swallowed every hot, steaming inch of it, the
- membranes inside her gripped his penis as he rammed it deeper and
- deeper into the liquid cauldron. The walls of her inner cunt con-
- tracted tightly around this invading rod.
-
- This deprived love tunnel seemed to quiver and clutch,
- enclosing the unyielding bulk of his cock in a loving grasp. The
- tip of his prick was pressing against her cavity. He enjoyed the
- depth of penetration for a few seconds more then grunted with
- pleasure as her vaginal muscles squeezed his cock in a milking
- action. In a motion that didn't dislodge his towering piston, he
- swung her over and placed her above him. Her heavy glistening
- breasts swayed in his pleasure-filled face. His tongue reached up
- to thank each rock-hard nipple in its own way for presenting such
- an erotic view.
-
- He began to see-saw in and out of her as she began to lever
- herself up and down the long, thick pole which impaled her. Her
- juices were soaking her pubic hair and the slopping, slushing,
- slurping sounds from her clasping cunt were erotic music to their
- ears. As she cried for it he bucked his hips even faster, match-
- ing her up and down motion, her belly smacking against his with
- audible slaps of flesh as she clung to him. He hung on to her,
- trying to steady her, staring avidly at her bouncing tits when
- she pulled away to view the penetration. A wail of ecstasy ripped
- from her mouth as the violent explosion of her climax pushed
- through the membranes of her passion pit, milking his cock with
- the loving vise of her wet sheath.
-
- With one last frantic thrust, his cock exploded; shooting
- his cream in a steady stream of fantastic release. She had never
- had such excitement. It was new, wonderful and needed. It went on
- and on with such convulsive pleasure that she was sure she would
- pass out. She could have easily taken more of what that cock
- promised. Jim snapped his fingers, and Marilyn saw the bright
- orange sun rise over a sleepy horizon. Around her were the
- loveliest trees she had ever seen. Sea gulls sang sweet melodies
- as she closed her eyes and welcomed the heat of a new tropical
- day.
-
- Jim gently placed his hands around her resting face and
- kissed her on the forehead. He told her to awake and remember
- everything. This was one of the most wonderful times he had ever
- had, and he was sure that Marilyn was pleased with the outcome.
- The most wondrous thing about it was the fact that another
- pleasure trip was just a snap of the fingers away. Maybe next
- weekend.
-
-
- CHAPTER THREE - MIND SEX
-
- "You are now more deeply asleep than you have ever been.
- Your body is weightless and seems to float among the clouds. You
- can't feel your arms or legs. All tension has bled from your
- muscles, and you are at complete peace. You are traveling down an
- escalator. As the moments pass, you are going deeper and deeper
- into a warm and satisfying trance. You feel more safe and com-
- fortable than you ever have.
-
- "Am I correct when I say that you are interested in mentally
- living through a fantasy as a spy in Russia?" Jim inquired of his
- subject Maggie.
-
- "Yesss. I want to live my fantasy of being a sexy fem fatale
- sent into Russia to extract secrets from a Russian munitions
- scientist. I want it to be the sexiest and more exciting ex-
- perience of my life," Maggie explained in a slow, far-away voice.
-
- Jim continued, "You have been sent to Russia under the
- pretense of developing trade between the U.S.A. and the Soviet
- Union. You work for World Trade Developers in Moscow. You are the
- sexiest woman in the city. You have been moving in the upper
- crust society of the Soviet Union in an effort to promote
- products for the United States and surreptitiously obtain the
- plans for a powerful laser weapon for your government.
-
- "You are at a cocktail party sponsored by the Kremlin to
- enhance new markets of world trade. Around you are hundreds of
- people, many of which you are sure work for the K.G.B. You have
- to be careful. If your cover is blown, you will have your own
- personal tour of Siberia.
-
- "You have just met Aleksei Vladimirovich a week ago, a supe-
- rior looking young man of thirty-five years of age. You are
- hoping that you will see him at this party. The intelligence net-
- work assures you that Vladimirovich has top security clearance,
- and the plans for the laser weapon are at his flat.
-
- "Alex, as you affectionately refer to him, is very well
- built, 6'4", 210 pounds, works out every day and has a face that
- looks like it was chiseled out of marble. His hair is blond and
- his eyes are a deep azure blue. He showed a great deal of inter-
- est in you last week when you were at his office on another mat-
- ter. You can imagine the size of his cock by the lovely bulge
- resting in his trousers, and you are grateful for the opportunity
- to work on this project.
-
- "You glide through the room in your well-fitted sapphire
- blue dress. It clings to you, accenting your lovely breasts and
- rolling buttocks. Every person's eyes are on you, and each step
- you take excites you more. You are casually looking for Alex as
- you enjoy the attention that both men and women are showering you
- with. Your eye catches a glimpse of him standing on the other
- side of the room speaking with a beautiful young Russian girl.
- Your heart sinks to think that your plans may be delayed by this
- union.
-
- "Jorgi, a chemical engineer for one of the companies you
- have been dealing with, asks you to dance. Your eyes remain glued
- to Alex and his conversation partner as you agree to dance with
- Jorgi. If he is not a strong dance leader, you may be able to
- sway him closer to Alex to overhear his conversation. Jorgi is a
- strong young man with more than a casual interest in you. It
- feels good to be in his arms and feel his body against yours. You
- can feel yourself responding to the excitement you feel from him
- as your bodies move more closely together with the soft music.
-
- "Jorgi holds your breasts close to his chest with his hot
- hand at the curve of your soft hip. Gradually his left leg moves
- between your legs to feel the heat of your womanhood. All the
- while you are moving closer to Alex with ease, as Jorgi's mind is
- preoccupied with the feel of your soft yielding body. You can
- feel new strength and size as Jorgi's growing, climbing staff
- kisses your leg in its travels upward. You are finding it in-
- creasingly more difficult to concentrate on Alex's conversation.
- Jorgi's stiff penis is not shy. It has become a hard wad of male
- meat nestled in your tightening belly.
-
- "Your concentration holds; you are a professional, and you
- are encouraged that your ability to control is increasing. The
- music ends, and Jorgi doesn't seem to want to let go of you. He
- asks if he can call you from time to time in his broken, but sexy
- English. You assure him that it would be wonderful to hear from
- him and notice that Alex is looking at you. You try not to give
- Jorgi the 'bum's rush' but can't take the chance of Alex direct-
- ing his attention elsewhere. 'Excuse me,' you direct to Jorgi, 'I
- have to speak with Alex. Please do call, I'd love to see you
- again' as you walk casually toward Alex.
-
- "A server walks by with a tray of champagne and offers a
- glass. You take the drink as a prop and find that you are a bit
- thirsty. Suddenly the glass is empty. 'Has champagne glass with
- hole in it for you?' Alex queried with his version of English.
-
- "You offer your best seductive smile as you respond, 'I sup-
- pose the warmth of the night has joined hands with the majesty of
- your lovely country to dry out the old pipes.' Alex looks at you
- with confusion about what your answer means. 'Yes,' you simplify,
- 'I was very thirsty. The glass was with hole in it for me,' you
- smile.
-
- "Now, at the count of three, you will wake up and be with
- Alex in his car. He has graciously offered to escort you to your
- hotel room. You will try to convince him that it would be better
- to go elsewhere. You must get into his flat. When he snaps his
- fingers once, you will be alone with him in his flat.
-
- "You are beginning to feel more sexy than you ever have
- before. Your senses are heightened, and every touch will send
- waves of sensuous excitement through your body. You know that you
- must give Alex more pleasure than he has known in order to escape
- with the secrets you have come for. If Alex puts his tongue in
- the crook of your neck and his penis is inside your body, you
- will feel his cock grow inside of you. It will expand to a full
- ten inches in length, stretching the walls of your hot cunt, and
- two and a half inches in girth pressing the sensitive lips of
- your womanhood outward. Each time his tongue enters your body,
- you will have a small climax. You can have hundreds of orgasms.
- When he holds your face in his hands, looks into your eyes and
- kisses you on the forehead, you will fall back into a deep sleep
- but you will remember everything when you do wake up. Do you
- understand?"
-
- "Yes, I understand," she said in the far-away voice of the
- sleeping.
-
- Jim began, "One, two, three. Wake up feeling sexier than you
- ever have before. You are hot and mysterious and bursting with
- excitement."
-
- "Alex, it was good of you to offer to take me home, but
- there are so many people at my hotel that will tease me if I show
- up with you. You know how cruel fellow workers can be. Would you
- mind if we went someplace else instead?" Maggie asked in a plead-
- ing fashion with her cleavage giving yet additional messages.
-
- "You would want for to go to Aleksei's flat? I have wonder-
- ful musik and compelling wine. We will get knowing each another
- more best. And crowds make uncomfortable most for me also," Alex
- commented in his sexiest voice as his hand rested provocatively
- on Maggie's upper thigh.
-
- "That would be great Alex. It's early and we have the whole
- night to get to know each other better. Drive on," Maggie sug-
- gested with a hungry smile."
-
- "Alex" snapped his fingers and they were in his flat. "I
- will put musik to play and get blood of grape for I and you," Jim
- played the part with no little relish. "Make comfortable and
- relax yourself." Maggie's eyes began photographing the room, not
- forgetting that in addition to her building lust, she must find
- the plans for the laser weapon.
-
- Maggie watched Jim's muscles ripple as he walked across the
- room. He felt her eyes glued to him everywhere he walked. Jim
- knew that his body was merely average and that Maggie didn't see
- it as average. He knew that with her mind she was able to make
- "Alex" look anyway that she wanted him to look. She would ob-
- viously make him look great. Her libido was working overtime, and
- the heat developing in the center of loins only served to improve
- the situation. Jim's cock began to tingle, and he developed a
- heaviness in his groin that would require release before too
- long.
-
- Maggie soon began to tingle all over her throbbing body. The
- excitement of what she hoped would soon happen sent shivers
- through her beautiful body. Jim left the room, went down the hall
- and returned in a pair of sweat pants and sweat shirt with the
- sleeves removed. There was some writing on the shirt, but she
- couldn't figure out what it said. The music began to play softly
- as he returned with a tray of wine with two glasses. The cork was
- removed, and he poured two half glasses; seating himself next to
- Maggie, he offered a glass to her extended hand.
-
- With little time having passed, the empty glasses found
- their respective place on the huge, glass-topped cocktail table
- and Maggie found herself in Alex's arms. She offered her lips to
- his hungry mouth, and the tingling increased dramatically. Her
- fingers and hands painted his arms and chest with a fervor as her
- lust continued to build. Shivers drove through her as his fingers
- began to release the buttons to her "sapphire blue dress." She
- felt the material tease her soft shoulders and back as it was
- slowly drawn over her skin. With a snap maneuver that surprised
- her, her bra fell away in one motion exposing her undulating
- breasts and erect nipples to Alex's gaze and touch. The heat in
- her brain became almost unbearable. 'Fuck, Fuck, Fuck' were the
- only words repeated in her mind.
-
- She began envisioning the muscles of his strong ass flexing
- as he drove his bone deep into her wet sheath. She imagined the
- hair surrounding his erect staff mingling with her own pubic gar-
- den as the rain of the combined love juices served to grease
- their journey to eruption. She could see the tip of his engorged
- fuck tool, glowing with her pussy juice; a huge purple knob rest-
- ing atop a thick, rigid pole adorned with bulging veins feeding
- the strength and length of his hardness. She could feel the
- weight of his hairy balls on her tight anal button, glistening
- with the milk of her natural lubrication. She could see the hair
- lying deep and low in the crack between her wiggling buttocks;
- wet and clinging as he drove his cock meat into the center of her
- being.
-
- As Jim moved his hands to and from heaving tits, rigid
- nipples, glistening buttocks and wet cavern, his mind also embel-
- lished the moments and searched for erotic sights, sounds and
- smells. He could imagine her hands gently cradling his hairy cum
- nuts. He could feel her lips begin to move on his throbbing,
- straining penis. First she teased; soon she devoured his broad
- column.
-
- The time for imagining was gone. Jim ran his tongue from one
- nipple to another circling each and gently nipping at each. Down
- between the cleft of her wiggling titties his tongue traveled.
- Down her stomach the wet tongue set fires until it rested in her
- panting navel. His teeth bared themselves and bit at her hip
- bones sending new shivers up and down her spine as his hands
- filled with the fleshy meat of her tight buttocks. Closer and
- closer his mouth moved toward her feminine, and fragrant hole.
-
- Bang! Jim's tongue entered Maggie's love tunnel and she
- began to quiver in climax. She had never felt anything quite like
- this. It wasn't a roaring, earth-shaking orgasm. It was as if she
- had been plugged into and electrical outlet. She could feel
- electric shocks traveling between her pussy, her ass hole and her
- marble-hard nipples and back again. It came again, and again, and
- again. She became dizzy and drove her fuck box against Jim's
- intruding face. After the first few jolts, Maggie began trying to
- count the eruptions to herself. 'One, two, three, four, fiiiive,
- holy shit, that was a great one, six, seven, eiggggg, Oh fuck,
- can it get better than this?' Maggie wondered.
-
- Jim withdrew his tongue and turned her over. His tongue
- moved slowly up the back of her thighs, nipping at the taunt back
- of her knees. Painting the back of her thighs with his saliva,
- Jim soon drove his tongue into the crack of her ass. Maggie threw
- her ass up in the air, and Jim's tongue drove deep into her cunt
- hole once again. Bang! Another electric shock fired through her
- wiggling frame. Teasing it's way up Maggie's back, Jim's tongue
- played on her shoulder blades and dipped into her glistening arm
- pits. She could now feel his hard meat resting in the gully be-
- tween the balls of her ass cheeks. She knew she needed that bone
- deep in her guts.
-
- Now Maggie took the offensive. Pushing Jim over to lie on
- his back, she was on him with hands and tongue. Licking his swol-
- len balls, she saw his huge staff grow again. Her hand stroked
- his love pole, and she saw the fluid begin to come to the tip of
- his lust weapon. Her hungry eyes danced from rippling belly, to
- hairy chest, to the purple tip of his spear. In one motion his
- cock was driven deep into her throat. It was stopped when it met
- resistance from the throat muscles, but only briefly. Given the
- chance to adjust, her throat opened even further, and the cock
- finished its journey and was embedded deep in her throat. She had
- taken it all, and her lips rested in his wiry public hair. Driv-
- ing it in and out gave Jim a wonderful sensation as the head of
- his cock was systematically squeezed and released by the involun-
- tary muscles of her throat. He would soon cum if he didn't stop
- now, and he wanted to squirt his load into Maggie's hot pussy.
-
- Turning her over in one quick motion, Jim spread her legs to
- expose her soaked honey pot. Resting on his knees, he lowered his
- face once again to her pit. Bang! The shock provided yet addi-
- tional orgasms. She drove her hot pussy against his face like a
- crazed animal, grunting and crying, "Oh fuck, fuck me, fuck my
- deep hole, spread my hairy cunt and fuck it deep. Shove your
- great cum stick into my quim and dump your hot load."
-
- "No! I want to see you play with your body. I want to see
- you fuck yourself and pinch your hard nipples. I want to see you
- finger fuck your hole and cum for me," Jim insisted.
-
- "Don't make me wait, Alex. I need your cock in my hole. I
- need you to squeeze my ass cheeks as you drive your thick cock
- into my pussy. Please!" Maggie begged.
-
- "Do it baby! Show me your beautiful titties. Pinch your
- rock-hard nipples. Dig in your hole with your hand and show me
- how you are going to cum hard for me. Show me how much you want
- my bone in your hole," Jim demanded as she began to moan and
- comply with his demands.
-
- Maggie filled her hands with her own heavy, yet firm breasts
- and squeezed hard. Filling her hands with tit flesh, she offered
- her raised and tight nipples to Jim's glance. Sliding her hands
- toward the center of each breast, she grabbed each nipple between
- forefinger and thumb and began to pinch and roll the puckered
- nipple flesh. This sent waves of additional excitement through
- her lust-racked body.
-
- Her hips began to bounce on the bed as if there was an im-
- aginary cock driving deep inside of her. Releasing one ripe
- nipple, her hand traveled down her stomach, pressing as it went
- to delve into her waiting, wet bush. Nervous fingers separate the
- lips of her cunt hole to cover them with the slick juice of her
- desire. Jim watched as her glistening fingers moved to her love
- button, pinching and pulling she was forced to grunt deeply and
- begin shaking her breast with her other hand.
-
- Releasing her clit, her middle finger slipped effortlessly
- into her wet cunt. She began pumping this single digit in and
- out. Soon a second finger was introduced to the hot cavern, and
- then a third. Deeper and deeper she drove her hand into her
- steaming cunt. She released her other breast and used the other
- hand to help pump her womanhood and furiously rub her clit. As
- both hands were centered mindlessly on her loins, her breasts
- were squeezed together as two huge mounds of shaking flesh
- adorned by hot pink nipples reaching for the ceiling. Jim's hand
- continued to slowly stroke his organ as he watched Maggie pound-
- ing her pussy deeply. He was positioned between her outstretched
- legs and she was beginning to climax. Her beautiful face
- tightened as her lips were pulled taunt across it. Her eyes were
- closed tightly, leaving wrinkles to frame them. The tendons in
- her neck rose as if straining to keep her head on her shoulders.
- Her head twisted back and forth, from side to side.
-
- Reaching toward her, Jim grabbed her wet hands and placed
- them against his lips. He tasted this woman and smelled the
- fragrance of her orgasm. If only he could bottle this scent!
- Moving to one side of her, Jim rolled her over. He began massag-
- ing the muscles of her back to reduce the tension she had built
- up. His hands found her rubbery ass cheeks and deeply moved these
- mounds of flesh. Maggie began to moan once again. He massaged the
- muscles of her neck and began kissing her ear lobes and neck. She
- began to stir again.
-
- Jim placed one of his knees between her legs into the wet
- pit of her hot snatch and continued to rub her back. Ever-so-
- slowly, Maggie began grinding her groin into his hard knee and
- thigh. Jim pressed ahead as his eyes were blessed with the vision
- of her buttocks wrapped around his leg and the sides of her
- breasts pushed out by the pressure of the mounds resting on the
- bed.
-
- Turning her over once again, Jim laid next to her and kissed
- her gently on her hot lips. His lips traveled to her resting
- nipples bringing them to life again. He again placed himself be-
- tween her legs and kissed her navel. Soon his face was resting
- over her fragrant pussy. Bang! His tongue dove into her depths
- and sent her convulsing again. Before Maggie knew what was hap-
- pening, Jim fell forward in one motion and his dick effortlessly
- found its mark. It was deep inside of Maggie's grasping cunt but
- it remained motionless. She tried to move under his weight to
- drive the pole in and out, but Jim did not move. He nuzzled his
- nose into the crook of her neck and allowed his tongue to dart
- against her skin.
-
- With this move, Maggie felt something she did not know she
- could feel. "Alex" had a great cock. It must be eight inches in
- length and two inches wide. However, it was growing. She could
- feel it getting longer and spreading her cunt lips farther apart.
- She felt as if she would explode, but didn't care if she did.
- When Jim's cock has reached it's full "ten inches in length and
- two and a half inches in girth," Maggie felt completely full of
- cock. Jim now began to move this monster pole into Maggie's
- depths. Each stroke seemed to bring another climax. She didn't
- know anyone could fit this much fuck bone into a cunt no matter
- how big or lubricated it was.
-
- Jim continued to move his raging penis into Maggie's love
- tunnel until he could hold off no longer. He could feel the cum
- boiling in his balls. The feeling was so intense that he thought
- that he could feel the cum traveling from the bottom of his legs
- and from his very brain. He reached under Maggie and filled his
- hands with her quaking ass cheeks as his cock continued to drive
- deep into her being. Her breasts and belly were now soaked with
- his perspiration and covered with his dislodged hair as he lifted
- himself to watch his glistening penis drive into Maggie's body.
- Her grunts resembled those of an animal driven by primordial
- lust.
-
- Jim's cock exploded with one wave after another. His thick
- cream came in gobs painting the walls of Maggie's greasy cunt.
- She could feel the overflow of cum pressing out of her hole
- around his shaft, flowing down and cooling her hot ass hole. She
- continued to buck hard against Jim, pulling his thick cock into
- her with her heals pounding his flexing ass muscles.
-
- Maggie's explosion was so intense that she either passed out
- or lost her sight for a short time. She could see nothing with
- her eyes, but the vision of Jim's hard driving cock was burned
- into her mind's eye. As her ecstasy subsided, she laid there and
- continued to feel tingling throughout her spent body. Jim
- couldn't or did not want to move.
-
- He was almost asleep when he sensed Maggie moving about the
- room. 'Shit! He thought to himself. She is probably trying to
- find the plans. I better not let this go any farther. "Maggie!
- Did you need something?" Jim inquired.
-
- "No Alex. I was just looking for a towel," she responded as
- she returned to the side of the bed.
-
- "Sit here next to me for a moment," Jim requested patting
- the bed next to him. She sat but looked a bit nervous. Jim placed
- his hands on either side of her face, looked into her eyes and
- kissed her on the forehead. Maggie melted back onto the bed and
- fell into a deep sleep once again. "You have found the plans
- while Alex was sleeping, dressed and slipped out of the flat
- without being detected. You are now safely away, back in your own
- country, feeling wonderful and well rested. When I snap my
- fingers you will begin to wake up slowly and remember everything
- that happened. Do you understand?"
-
- Again, the far away response of "yes" came from her lips.
- She was lovely laying there on the bed. Jim was reluctant to wake
- her up because she looked so peaceful and angelic.
-
- Time was getting late, and Jim knew that Maggie would want
- to get tidied up. Snapping his fingers, Jim said gently, "wake up
- now feeling refreshed and comfortable. Maggie opened her eyes
- slowly and allowed her glance to travel the room. Her glance
- finally rested on Jim at the side of the bed.
-
- "That was absolutely the most exciting time I've even spent.
- I have never been that hot, and I know I never came that many
- times in a month. Thank you so much for teaching me a great deal
- about myself and my own sexuality, Jim. Promise me we will take
- other trips together," she pleaded.
-
- "Trips are my specialty Maggie. If you have the gas, I can
- drive. I too enjoyed it more than I can say. Jorgi did feel a
- little left out. Maybe you'll have a chance to spend some time
- with him in the future. I plan to teach you how to accomplish
- that with or without me. But that'll be another story," Jim con-
- cluded with a smile.
-
-
- CHAPTER FOUR - MIND SEX
-
- It was Sunday evening, and Jim was tripping through the
- channels with his trusty remote. Low and behold, Captain James T.
- Kirk of the Starship Enterprise was listening to Bones explaining
- that he was a doctor and not a miracle worker. Spock was sharp-
- ening his ears to deal with the next catastrophe, and it dawned
- on Jim that one of his computer correspondent pals was a Sci Fi
- aficionado.
-
- Jim had the opportunity to communicate frequently with her
- over the phone lines, through the computer, but had never met
- her. Her computer handle was Star; not an uncommon name for a Sci
- Fi buff. He had seen a photo of her, that he downloaded in what
- is referred to as a GIF format; a digitized representation of a
- photo that has been scanned into a computer. The photo was, as
- she suggested, somewhat old, but all of the same characteristics
- must still be present. She was an exciting-looking woman sporting
- shoulder length brown hair, a lovely smile, large breasts and a
- well-defined waist. Her wit assured Jim that she was someone that
- he would enjoy being with.
-
- She had indicated some interest in hypnosis, but said that
- it had been tried before with her to no avail. Further, she
- shared that she had a very vivid imagination and did love sex a
- great deal. Her main interest was in satisfying her partner.
- "Would you be willing to have me try working with you one day to
- determine if you have the ability to go into a trance?" Jim asked
- during one of their frequent conversations.
-
- "Well, I think we have gotten to know one another well
- enough. I wouldn't be opposed to it, but I really don't think
- that it will do any good. Do you think Thursday will be good for
- you," she asked.
-
- "I don't think I have anything pressing. I'll double check
- and leave a message for you on the system. Just leave your ad-
- dress and the time you want me to show up. If there's a problem,
- I'll let you know, and we can make it another time," Jim urged.
-
- Star's mind began to question. 'Wouldn't it be great to make
- love in a space ship? I wonder what kind of a guy this Jim really
- is? Could I really be hypnotized? I wonder how it would feel to
- have a Romulan's thick cock inside of me? Does a Romulan have a
- cock?' The questions continued to flow with no distinct result in
- mind. The thought of it, none-the-less was making her horny. She
- hoped that Thursday would bring some interesting answers.
-
- Jim returned home from the office and turned on his com-
- puter. In only seconds he was on line with the bulletin board
- system and found that there was a message for him. His eyes lit
- up when he saw that Star had left him the information about her
- address, general directions and the time of eight o'clock. He im-
- mediately keyed in the information advising her that the date and
- time were fine, and that he would be happy to be there.
-
- Method would be the difficulty. Jim knew that if Star was
- intelligent and had a vivid imagination, she should be very sus-
- ceptible to hypnosis. Her problem was likely that no one took
- enough time to relax her sufficiently to allow the suggestions to
- do their work. Jim had devised a method that had worked several
- times in the past and would introduce Star to it when they met.
-
- Thursday arrived and Jim started to drive over to Star's
- house. He was about fifteen minutes early so he decided to just
- ride about the neighborhood. At 8:00 o'clock he drew together the
- courage to approach Star's door. After a brief wait the door
- opened to reveal a lovely woman with a warm smile and look of
- slight apprehension. "Jim?" she asked, wondering if this could be
- her previously unseen friend. A wordless smile assured her that
- this was indeed Jim, and she invited him to enter. "Please made
- yourself comfortable, Jim. I thought I would get us a drink.
- Would you like a glass of white wine?, she queried.
-
- "That would be great Star; but please don't go to any
- trouble," Jim pleaded in his best manner. He walked into the
- living room and settled in what appeared to be a comfortable
- chair. Soon Star returned with a tray bearing a bottle of chilled
- wine, a cork screw and two stemmed glasses. He couldn't help but
- to notice her warm body as it swayed into the room. She appealed
- to him in several respects. He already knew that she had a
- pleasant enough personality, and now he saw that she was also
- physically appealing. "Would you like to begin right away, Star?"
- he asked.
-
- "Whenever you're ready, Jim," she responded. Jim asked her
- to pour herself a glass of wine and have a seat in a comfortable
- chair. She did so and selected a chair close to Jim. She sipped
- on the wine and leaned back to become comfortable. Jim slowly
- took her through a series of relaxation exercises and noticed
- that she was making fine progress. He decided to deepen the
- trance and see what happened. She was indeed imaginative and
- seemed to be a good subject. The trance was deepened once again.
- She was mentally brought down deeper and deeper by visualizing an
- escalator reaching to the depths of her mind. Jim could see the
- muscles of her body begin to relax as she sunk into the chair.
-
- "You are now in a deeper sleep than you have ever been
- before, Star. You are a very sensual woman, and you can feel
- yourself tingling all over. There is a warmth spreading
- throughout your lovely body, teasing your full breasts and paint-
- ing your womanhood. It merely serves to make you more comfortable
- and relaxed. You have often shared an interest in Science Fic-
- tion. I am going to take you on a journey that will enable you to
- experience things that you have never felt before. From time to
- time you will perceive yourself to be in danger, but I stress
- that at no time will I allow anything to happen to you. If at any
- time you become too concerned, you may fall into a natural sleep
- and awaken slowly; unafraid and well rested. You are not com-
- pelled to do anything against your will. If you encounter any-
- thing that you are uncomfortable with, feel free to share that
- with me. Do you understand?" Jim asked. Star nodded slowly, and
- Jim continued.
-
- "You will become the character in this story, and you will
- see, hear and feel everything that the character does.
-
- "Star finds herself in a strange land. There are colors she
- has never seen, sounds she's never heard and smells that have
- never touched her senses. There is an abundance of lovely trees
- and flowers that blend to offer her eyes the most wondrous gift.
- She can hear a waterfall close by and smell the moisture in the
- air. Her heart is racing in anticipation of what experience she
- may meet.
-
- "She is science officer and has just ridden a light beam to
- this strange planet's surface. Star is under orders of the Cap-
- tain of the vessel which has brought her to this strange globe.
- She is on a mission to discover if there exists intelligent life
- on this planet. She looks about and sees Maagnex, a citizen of
- Szinval. Earth and Szinval have entered into an alliance of joint
- adventure to search the galaxy for other potential allies in
- their common battle against an evil galactic empire. Maagnex is
- neither man nor woman. Szinvalites have the ability to self
- reproduce and re-generate themselves.
-
- "As she exchanges wary glances with her new partner, sud-
- denly she sees a slow flash of bluish energy strike Maagnex
- squarely in the chest. It drops to the reddish ground, and she
- immediately pulls her ultra-sound weapon. Her eyes flash from
- colorful rock to unrecognized tree in an effort to locate the
- source of the assassin. She sees movement to the left, and
- quickly turns and trains her weapon on the area of movement. A
- scale-covered creature peeks out from behind a green rock and
- takes aim. Star's weapon is discharged, and an inhuman sound
- issues forth from behind the rock.
-
- "Cautiously, she approaches the spot where the sound came
- from. Her eyes fix on what appears to be a monster of regal
- proportions. He must have stood eight feet tall. He was com-
- pletely naked and covered with reptilian scales. She believes
- that it must have been a male because of the rather large sex or-
- gans that resembled those of a human man. In the distance, she
- hears animal-like sounds and see several similar creatures ap-
- proaching. She is grateful that they don't look too bright.
- Quickly she returns to Maagnex and begins to usher it into what
- appears to be a cave off to her left. As she drags Maagnex into
- the cave, she feels a slight upward pull.
-
- "She enters further into the cave and Maagnex soon feels al-
- most weightless. Suddenly, she feels herself rising up into the
- air in the interior of the cave. Maagnex is following her. She
- settles gently onto the ceiling of the cave. She is only twenty
- feet into the cave, and she feels almost weightless. The whole
- world seems to be up side down. As she pulls Maagnex further into
- the cave, her weight seems to increase. There was never anything
- like this in her star manual. Gravity becomes reversed in this
- bizarre cave.
-
- "Her journey continues as she attempts to find a place where
- she can administer aid to Maagnex and notify her Captain. Soon
- she finds a small pool of water, resting comfortably in the ceil-
- ing of the cave. Maagnex groans, and she harbors some hope that
- it will recover sufficiently to return to the ship's medical
- staff. Its wounds are dressed to such an extent to stop the
- slight bleeding that occurred, and she reaches for her communica-
- tion device. 'Star to Command,' she hails the ship.
-
- "There is no answer and her concern increases that the
- reverse field that she has encountered has hampered her ability
- to reach her ship. She must return to the mouth of the cave in an
- effort to contact the ship. She decides to wait in hopes that her
- unwanted visitors outside the cave will take their fallen warrior
- and leave the area. If the crew of the ship does not hear from
- Star soon, they will surely investigate.
-
- "Minutes passed like lazy hours. She decides to approach the
- entrance to the cave to try again to communicate with the ship.
- Stealthily, she moves across the ceiling of the cave. She begins
- to feel more weightless again. Just as she sees the opening, she
- feels a presence and smells an odor that she can not identify.
- Her weapon is advanced before her. Instantly, her arm is in the
- cold grip of something or someone unidentifiable. The pressure on
- her wrist is so severe that her weapon floats away. In one swift,
- powerful motion she feels her suit stripped from her to expose
- her bountiful breasts and vacillating thighs.
-
- "It was one of the creatures that she had encountered upon
- arrival. Her heart pounds as she fights this frightening crea-
- ture. His cold, scaled hands gently but menacingly reach for her
- curving breasts and strokes her taunt buttocks wiggling toward
- freedom. Suddenly her panties disappear in one movement exposing
- a tuft of soft hair which protects her velvety pussy lips. Her
- mind is racing. This creature is trying to rape her. She sees his
- engorged, towering member standing in an erect fashion. It has
- increased in size and must now be twenty inches in length and a
- full four inches wide. His balls are like two soft coconuts,
- devoid of hair.
-
- "There is no possible way that she can survive such an as-
- sault. Star reaches deep within herself to muster all of her
- strength and lashes out with her foot at his huge balls. After
- the thud which sounded foreboding, she looks into his eyes to
- determine what damage is done. It appeared as though he smiled.
- Her concern turns to panic. As they float through the air, she is
- helpless to stop his drive. His cold hand reaches into the
- crevice of her ass, and he spreads her legs with his strong
- finger-like extensions. His other hand is around her waist, and
- he draws her to him. Closer and closer his huge cock comes to her
- straining pussy. It touches the lips of her pussy, and she fights
- him away once again. Her strength is quickly subsiding, and she
- knows that only moments stand between her and agony.
-
- "Zap... the report of a ultra-sound weapon steals through
- the cave. Star looks into the face of her assailant to find a
- stupid, confused look which seemed to linger motionless. The
- creature relaxed and seemed to float over into the corner of the
- cavern. Star remained floating in the cave, and soon her eyes
- fell upon Captain Jim Mandrel standing at the entrance to the
- grotto. Star's relief was beyond words. 'Are you OK, Star?' asked
- Jim.
-
- "'Yes Captain. I've never been so glad to see anyone in my
- life; in the life I almost didn't have any more. Thank you.'
-
- "'I've never seen a reverse gravity cave before. Is Maagnex
- in there with you?' the Captain inquired as he attempted to
- divert his eyes out of deference to Star's nakedness.
-
- "'Yes Captain. I don't know what kind of shape it's in. It
- took a pretty bad shot to the chest,' she responded as she sud-
- denly realized that she didn't have a stitch of clothing on.
-
- "The Captain explains that their is a security team outside.
- He asks them to wait so that Star will not be embarrassed. He
- enters the cave and she feels his eyes on her body as she
- modestly attempts to cover herself as well as she may with her
- hands. The Captain sees her heavy breasts floating in the air.
- Her buttocks wiggle nicely as she moves her legs in an effort to
- maintain balance. He indicates that he will need some help get-
- ting Maagnex to the entrance to the cave. She puts her modesty on
- the back burner and follows him to the rear of the cavern. She
- feels her weight shift as the gravity once again begins to pull
- on her breasts and buttocks. This is one of the strangest feel-
- ings she has ever had. It is exciting. It is equally exciting how
- the Captain looks at her body and tries to pretend not to see it.
-
- "Star assists Captain Mandrel carry Maagnex to the entrance
- to the cavern. He indicates that she should stay well within the
- cave until he returns with a new uniform for her. He helped her
- locate her weapon and left the cavern with Maagnex into the hands
- of the security team waiting to assist," Jim instructed Star.
-
- As Jim was giving the suggestions to Star as she reclined in
- the chair, he noticed that she was becoming excited from time to
- time. She seemed to enjoy the weightless feeling that she found
- in the cave. He decided to help her capitalize on the feeling.
-
- "You are still in the cavern, warm but naked. You remain in
- the weightless area of the cave and are enjoying a feeling that
- you have never felt before. Your breasts are large but seem to
- float in the air. It is almost similar to swimming in the buff.
- You can feel the warm, damp air all around you; kissing your
- thighs, teasing your nipples and separating your buttocks. You
- enjoy the thought of Captain Mandrel sneaking peeks at your
- lovely body. You enjoyed the feeling as you brushed up against
- him as you assisted him removing Maagnex from the cave. You begin
- to think how it would be to make love in mid-air.
-
- "Almost uncontrollably, your hands reach up and caress your
- breasts and tweak you nipples as you wait for the Captain to
- return. Suspended in the air you reach behind you to feel the
- texture of your buttocks. As you cup one breast with one hand,
- the other dips into your own cave to feel its wetness. You are
- not sure whether it was the fear of the creature or the excite-
- ment that Captain Mandrel offered that made you as wet as you
- are. You slip one finger inside of your honey pot; then another
- and yet another. You begin to pinch and pull at your nipples.
-
- "When I snap my fingers once, you will open your eyes. You
- will be in the cavern in a weightless state. You will notice that
- the Captain has returned and has been watching you from the
- shadows. You may feel free to deal with this in any way you see
- fit. When I snap my fingers again, you will wake up completely
- and feel wonderfully rested and completely relaxed. The next time
- that I snap my fingers twice and tell you to relax, you will fall
- into a deep sleep just as you have this time. Do you understand
- all that I have told you, Star?" Jim asked.
-
- "Yes. I understand," Star said in an almost imperceptible
- voice.
-
- Jim snapped his fingers and Star opened her eyes. She jumped
- as if she were startled and immediately covered herself with her
- hands. She sheepishly looked at Jim and began searching for
- words.
-
- "I'm sorry Captain. It was just a strange feeling; something
- that I have never felt before. I don't usually touch myself. I
- prefer to leave that to someone else," Star offered.
-
- Jim returned, "with a body like that, I think I would touch
- it as often as I could. I'm kind of sorry now that I never paid
- more attention to you. This atmosphere is exciting. It must be
- something like skinny-dipping. I brought a new uniform for you. I
- hope that I got the size right."
-
- "I was just thinking the same thing.. about skinny-dipping I
- mean. It is uncanny how wonderful it feels. If you don't think
- you'll be missed for a while, we could always explore this cave a
- little more closely. That would give you a chance to see what it
- feels like," Star said.
-
- The Captain returned to the mouth of the cave, said some-
- thing on the communicator and returned. He began removing his
- uniform with a rather shy smile on his face. "You only live once.
- Right?" he said to Star.
-
- She smiled and opened her arms to his naked body. Their lips
- met in a warm kiss that seemed to melt with their heat. His hands
- reached to touch her large, but weightless breasts. She could
- feel her nipples harden to a marble-like quality as they tingled
- in his hands. Star felt his cock begin to make the journey from
- its resting place to what must be new heights. His tool was not
- just floating at this point; it was straining. She could feel it
- leave a trail of fluid on her thigh as it increased in both
- length and girth. Her hands reached for his buttocks to feel the
- hair that uniformly covered his muscular globes. His hand, in
- turn, found the cleft between her own ass cheeks, and he
- separated these soft, tight mounds.
-
- Her lovely, woolly cunt was dripping with anticipation. The
- lips of her pussy began to pout and fold out in anticipation of
- his inevitable entrance. Jim placed the tip of his raging organ
- into the opening and allowed it to tease. First an inch went into
- the depths; then another. He then pulled it out, covered with her
- hot cream. He pressed further into her slippery love hole with
- four inches and again withdrew. In his next effort, he slip all
- eight inches of his fuck tube into her hot cunt until his balls
- were well seated against her puckered ass hole. At this depth he
- remained, savoring the involuntary convulsions of her hot tunnel.
-
- Lowering his head, he began to suck relentlessly on her ripe
- nipples; feeling the spongy texture of her large breasts. It
- seemed to Star as if his thick penis began to grow again. "Fuck
- my sweet hole Jim. Fuck it hard and deep. Fuck me in the air. Put
- your cock deeper into me than you have ever put it in any one,"
- she almost screamed.
-
- Jim drove his diamond hard cock into Star with wild abandon.
- They floated in the air as Star bucked and road this fiery rod.
- Her breasts floated effortlessly, and she could feel the air sur-
- rounding them. Suddenly, she could feel a new rigidity enter
- Jim's cock. He grunted deeply and began to shoot hot loads of
- cream into Star's waiting hole. She too, felt a tingling begin in
- her toes and move throughout her body. It seemed as if it would
- last forever. Again and again a new orgasm visited her.
-
- Soon, they were both spent; drifting in the air. They
- relaxed into a cuddling position and continued to touch one
- another. Jim broke the silence, "I do hope that you enjoyed it as
- much as I did."
-
- "Wonderful! Absolutely wonderful, Captain," she responded.
-
- "I don't doubt that this is one of the most exciting caves
- that I have ever explored. I hope that I will have the oppor-
- tunity to explore with you once again, Star," Jim said as he
- snapped his fingers.
-
-
- CHAPTER FIVE - MIND SEX
-
- Would his mind ever quit gravitating to thoughts of gut-
- twisting climaxes, beautiful bodies and the dizzying aroma of
- sex? Jim sat thinking of the excitement associated with some of
- his recent adventures with hypnosis and sex. He had used hypnosis
- on his lovely wife Peggy on several occasions in scenarios rang-
- ing from a massage by a hunk of a man to actually fucking he and
- a friend at the same time. Their sex had never been so good. He
- wasn't sure whether Peggy would ever have broken fear's icy grip
- had he not used hypnosis, but he was glad that she did. Now she
- was free to experiment with her own sexuality without concern for
- traditional guilt or jealousy.
-
- Jim did have to deal with his own guilt however. He
- developed the usual arguments about allowing his wife to be
- promiscuous. They included reputation, children, jealousy and
- relationship. He felt quite confident that, as long as they were
- discrete, neither his nor Peggy's reputation would suffer. Their
- children were all but grown now. Both daughters were away at col-
- lege. On the topic of jealousy, they had seen too many of their
- friends break up or divorce because they were jealous of another
- person. He was confident that no man or woman could challenge
- their emotional commitments. If that were possible, they
- shouldn't be together in the first place.
-
- Before Jim ever committed to involve himself in the life-
- style of sexual freedom, he searched his heart. If Peggy never
- had a sexy thought about another man, she probably wouldn't be
- normal. Should he allow himself to be jealous of that? Did he
- want Peggy to become enraged if he wanted another woman? Vir-
- tually every man he knew strayed from time to time. When it was
- done with deception it was always negative and sometimes resulted
- in broken relationships. Had they not been broad-minded enough,
- he was sure that they would have lost one another long ago. It
- would have been a terrible waste, because in all other matters
- they were the best of friends and excellent partners in life.
- Guilt and jealousy, as a result, were not valid issues. Their
- life had been vastly enhanced with no danger of deception ruining
- their relationship.
-
- Jim's mind began to work on sharing these principals with
- others with two motives in mind. The first motive was, quite
- naturally, to locate other individuals that turned him on. The
- next was to promote the use of hypnosis in sex and the lifestyle
- of sexual freedom. The day didn't go by that he didn't sign on to
- the computer bulletin board service. They had a great x-rated
- section that permitted him to chat with others about sex
- anonymously. Obviously, most of the people that he chatted with
- were women. They would share their sexual fantasies with him and
- he with them.
-
- Jim had also left public messages on the system suggesting
- that if anyone cared to discuss a swinging lifestyle or hypnosis
- in the bed room that they should feel free to contact him. One
- day after logging on to the system, he heard his computer beep.
- This was accompanied by a message indicating that Don wanted to
- chat with him. Jim responded to the page and welcomed the caller.
- Don, a computer communicator from Western Illinois, inquired
- whether or not Jim was serious about the use of hypnosis in the
- bed room. Jim indicated that he was and explained some of the
- uses of hypnosis to improve sexual relationships.
-
- Excitement was evident in Don's responses. Jim asked whether
- Don and his lady had ever experimented with other persons outside
- of their relationship. Don indicated that he had not, but would
- not be opposed if Donna would consent. He went on to say that she
- would likely not be interested, but that he would discuss the
- topic with her. Jim suggested that Don allow Donna to read one of
- the stories that he wrote on the topic. If she demonstrated any
- interest, they could pursue the matter further. Don thanked Jim
- for his information, indicated that the conversation had really
- turned him on and assured Jim that he would get back to him.
-
- A few days went by and Jim heard nothing further from Don.
- Then one day as Jim was jumping around the bulletin board system
- he was again paged. He responded to the page and found Don wait-
- ing to continue the previous conversation. Don indicated that he
- had offered Jim's article to Donna and that she had found it very
- interesting. Additionally he and Donna had discussed the topic of
- "hypnosex" at length, became very aroused at the many doors that
- this would open for them and fucked each other's brains out af-
- terward. Jim got a smile on his face as his mind turned to mo-
- ments gone by. He had similar experiences and could identify with
- the other couple.
-
- Don asked Jim if he would ever be willing to travel to Il-
- linois to put on a demonstration of hypnosis. As he heard this
- request, he could feel the warmth begin to develop in his pants.
- Jim's cock began to grow thinking about the prospect of teaching
- yet others to reach the heights that he and Peggy did. He indi-
- cated that it was possible that he could take a long weekend and
- visit with them. Jim also told Don that there would be no obliga-
- tion to continue to pursue such avenues if after they met him
- they did not feel comfortable. Don told Jim that he would leave
- some electronic mail for him explaining how to reach Don's house
- and other incidentals. They bid each other good bye and signed
- off the system.
-
- Jim was an accomplished hypnotist. He had been using hyp-
- nosis clinically for years helping police departments interview
- witnesses for recall of events. He had never had the occasion to
- use hypnosis on anyone other than Peggy for purposes of improved
- sex. This was indeed exciting. He would be able to teach Donna
- how to improve and intensify her climaxes. He would be able to
- teach her mind how to fly to a secluded beach with her lover,
- shape her lover into any person she wanted and have the best sex
- she had ever known. Don would also benefit by the same abilities.
- He could stay harder longer, turn Donna into anyone he wanted to,
- be more responsive to his partner's needs and generally enjoy all
- of his adventures much better. His cock was hard just thinking of
- all of the possibilities.
-
- The date was set. Jim had arranged for an extended weekend.
- He would go to Chicago to attend a trade show for his business
- and then scurry over to Western Illinois. As he drove, his
- thoughts turned to his own sexuality and many of the experiences
- he had over the years. He was getting a little older, but was
- pleased that he had stayed in shape. As he hit the Indiana line a
- smile appeared on his face. He was remembering several of his
- friends and his children teasing him about how much he resembled
- Indiana Jones. It wasn't only his appearance; he even acted like
- him from time to time. The road continued to disappear under the
- hood of his car as his mind turned to many of the hot times he
- had experienced.
-
- His Chicago trip was basically routine. He pulled out of the
- Holiday Inn Merchandise Mart and began moving westward. He
- snapped in a cassette that responded with soft tunes designed to
- invite thought. Invite it they did. Jim's mind again returned to
- visions of previous hot moments; Peggy's unbridled excitement the
- first time she thought she was being touched by another man. Of
- course this was Jim, but Peggy's mind and body reacted as if it
- were another man. New hands on her heavy breasts, a strange penis
- poised at the lips of her quivering pussy, a sharp, warm tongue
- pressed against her tight buttocks were the moments that traveled
- through Jim's mind. He was becoming so rigid that he thought his
- zipper would burst. Then there was the time that Peggy had ac-
- tually touched another man for the first time. Jim could see this
- as sure as if it were happening here, in the car, before his very
- eyes. The miles clicked by on the odometer as visions of hot,
- sweet encounters danced through his memory.
-
- The message and directions that Jim had received from Don
- suggested that they meet at the lounge of a local hotel at eight
- in the evening. Jim didn't have a problem with that. These people
- didn't know him and would obviously be skeptical. What if Jim
- were a gargoyle type with warts on his nose and rolls of fat
- hanging from a copious frame? It was only prudent for them to
- want to meet Jim in a neutral location so they could excuse them-
- selves if they were uncomfortable with him. Jim checked into the
- hotel, got settled, cleaned up and headed for the restaurant to
- get a bite to eat.
-
- Dining alone was an interesting experience. You don't
- usually get bogged down in a conversation that distracts you, so
- you can often analyze people a little better. You eat at your
- leisure, scan the room for interesting people, and enjoy an un-
- common solace. Jim was convinced that his libido was in rare form
- as his eyes locked on to a waitress with an usually great-looking
- ass. As she moved across the room her buttocks rolled with such
- grace that Jim could feel himself stiffen. Her uniform was cut in
- such a way that her small but well-shaped breasts danced nicely.
- He memorized her curves and her pretty face so that he might use
- self hypnosis at a later date to make love with her.
-
- Dinner being history, Jim lit a cigarette and sipped on his
- after-dinner drink. He continued to evaluate the inhabitants of
- the room. Now wouldn't it be great if that couple sitting at the
- table next to the aquarium were Don and Donna. The lady had
- beautiful brown hair, sparkling brown eyes, about 5'5" tall, with
- a very lovely shape. She appeared to be blessed with full breasts
- that seemed to be about a 34 C. She had the loveliest smile and
- winning manner. They were enjoying their dinner and one another.
- Jim was incredulous when he thought about all of the couples that
- seemed to be in competition with one another as opposed to being
- partners and friends. This couple seemed to be the type that
- would not let jealousy get in the way of their friendship. Jim
- could see their genuine laughter tickle through the room from
- time to time. They looked at one another with respect, and Jim
- liked that.
-
- Jim paid the check and got up from the table. As he began
- walking away from the table his foot caught one leg of the chair
- next to him and over it went. Nothing like being embarrassed to
- tears as the room came to a silent halt. Putting on his red face,
- he smiled at the couple next to the aquarium and exited the room.
- The lounge, called "The Hound," was an interesting place. It
- resembled a victorian scene. There were old British gas lights
- throughout the room providing the only lighting. The floor was
- made to resemble cobblestones, and there was piped in hansom cab
- and other street sounds. He expected Sherlock Holmes and Dr. Wat-
- son to come through the door at any minute. He walked over to a
- rough hewn table and pulled out one of the heavy wooden chairs to
- sit down.
-
- This decor was wonderful. The walls were graced with two
- mounted deer heads and one huge moose head. In another corner was
- a suit of armor complete with shield and sword. Old pottery and
- pewter tableware accented the room. While glancing around the
- room, he was startled by someone standing next to him. He gave a
- slight jump in response to Bridgit's request to assist him. What
- a great looking waitress. She was dressed in the costume of an
- english barmaid. He bodice was very low cut and her cleavage
- seemed to speak to him. He had difficulty removing his eyes from
- her breasts to answer her. When he finally did look up he saw
- that Bridgit was also possessed of an absolutely beautiful face
- with slightly overlapping front teeth. She smiled and again re-
- quested his order handing him what appeared to be a british five
- pound note. She also told him that the specials were on the
- reverse of what appeared to be english currency. He ordered a
- tall rum and coke.
-
- As Bridgit walked away, Jim's eyes were glued to her lovely
- buttocks as they swayed playfully toward the bar. He watcher her
- as she placed the drink on a tray and returned to his table. As
- she bent over to set a napkin in front of him Jim's eyes were
- again treated to a cock-wrenching view of her ample breasts. Once
- again she bent over and placed his drink in front of him. Jim
- said, "Good god almighty, if you continue to serve drinks to me
- like that, I'll be ordering one every minute."
-
- Bridgit grinned at him and told him that it was early and
- that it would be best if he paced himself. "Only if you promise
- that one day before I die you will fall passionately in love with
- me and let me drink a small cup of your bath water," Jim teased.
-
- The lovely waitress again chuckled and bounced away from the
- table. Jim was enamored by Bridgit to say the least. She made him
- want to ask the one about, what's a nice girl like you etc. Jim
- was thinking that it was rather slow in the lounge as he heard
- the sound of what appeared to be Big Ben sounding seven o'clock.
- Just another hour to kill, thought Jim. He wanted to gulp his
- drink just so Bridgit would return with another. Ten minutes went
- by, and he could feel the lovely waitress sneaking peeks at him
- from time to time. He wasn't peeking; he was staring, and Bridgit
- didn't seem to mind.
-
- She returned to his table and asked if there was anything
- that she could do for him. She quickly caught what she had said
- and stumbled with the words, "well you know what I mean."
-
- "Unfortunately, young lady, I do. However, I would like
- another drink if you wouldn't mind," Jim responded. She again
- smiled and danced off to acquire another rum and coke. She
- returned more quickly this time as the bartender wasn't very
- busy. Once again her lovely globes bounced in front of Jim's
- eyes. This time he was not quite so obvious in his appreciation.
- He thought it would be better to be cool and collected and not
- seem too anxious.
-
- Bridgit stood and talked with him for a while about the ob-
- vious interests before she was called away to another table. Jim
- had learned that she was twenty-nine years of age. She had a four
- year old daughter. She had returned to school in an effort to get
- her degree in computer science, and she had only been working
- here for about three days. Bridgit had recently broken up with
- her boyfriend, but she really didn't care to discuss that in any
- detail. Jim felt comfortable that she had some interest in him.
- He indicated that he was married and filled her in on the other
- usual details.
-
- Jim's lovely waitress returned several times and offered him
- a smile every time their glance met. At about 7:50 the couple
- that was sitting next to the aquarium in the restaurant walked
- into the lounge. They glanced at Jim, and his discomfort returned
- about almost falling on his ass in front of them. They selected a
- table three tables over from Jim and were seated. Bridgit was
- soon there to take their orders. Again they demonstrated their
- mutual excitement and interest. Things began to perk up a little.
- Two other couples entered and were seated. Several single men and
- women came in and gravitated to the bar. When the music began to
- play the atmosphere was somewhat changed. No longer did Jim feel
- as though he were trapped in a time warp. He was a little sad-
- dened at the loss of the victorian era.
-
- Now the hard part came. There were several couples in the
- lounge and many singles. How in the hell would Jim be able to
- determine who Don and Donna were? His eyes traveled the room,
- hoping that someone would offer some signal. One of the new
- couples who had entered seemed to be making more than usual eye
- contact with Jim. He got up from his chair and went over to their
- table. He approached the man and asked if his name was Don. "No,
- I'm sorry, you got the wrong guy," responded the man. Christ, did
- he ever feel like an ass hole. Why couldn't he have agreed on a
- signal that they could use? He excused himself and returned to
- his table. No sooner did he get re-seated, the man from res-
- taurant aquarium approached him. "You look as if you could be
- Jim," he said.
-
- "You have to think me a real klutz," Jim smiled as he rose
- to shake Don's hand.
-
- "Oh, you mean the chair in the dining room. No, don't worry
- about it. I slipped on my ass getting out of the car to come in
- here. There wasn't anyone around so I didn't feel so bad. Why
- don't you come over and join us," said Don.
-
- Jim gathered up his glass and followed Don over to his
- table. He was very pleasantly surprised that this was the couple
- that he would get to know. Donna was even lovelier up close. She
- had such a pleasant voice and demure handshake. Jim enjoyed the
- way she continued to hold his hand while they were being intro-
- duced.
-
- "Can you really accomplish all of the wonderful things that
- I read about through hypnosis Jim?" inquired Donna.
-
- "I hesitate saying 'yes' without reservation. You can do
- many things and do them quickly if you are a good subject. If you
- are not what is referred to as a somnambulist, it may take prac-
- tice and the necessary time would be increase," offered Jim.
-
- Don asked, "how do you determine whether or not someone is a
- good subject?"
-
- Jim explained, "it is often a matter of trial and error.
- Some methods work better with one person than another. One thing
- is for sure, each of us can experience hypnosis to one degree or
- another. Your sexual experiences can always be improved. If you
- feel comfortable, after we finish our drinks, we can go to the
- room or to your place and experiment. If you become uncomfort-
- able, we can stop and return for a leisurely chat."
-
- Don and Donna looked at one another, smiled and agreed to
- give it a shot. They indicated that they would feel more comfort-
- able if they were to go to Jim's room. He assured them that it
- was fine with him, that he would pay his tab and see them in room
- 338 as soon as they were ready.
-
- Jim walked up to Bridgit, tapped her on the shoulder and
- asked for his bill. She seemed a little disappointed that he was
- leaving. He told her that he had a meeting and may be able to
- return later. She didn't respond; she merely smiled. Jim turned
- to walk away when he heard her say, "I hope you can make it back.
- We're open till 2:30." Jim smiled and exited the lounge.
-
- As he walked toward the room, he felt a shiver of excitement
- run through him. He hoped that both of the subjects would be deep
- trance subjects. He would interview them about what they hope to
- accomplish when they got to the room.
-
- It didn't take long for Jim to hear a knock at the door. He
- quickly opened the door and was faced with a couple that had a
- look on their face as if they were at the door of a house party.
- Jim immediately asked them for their coats and secured them.
- "Come in and make yourselves comfortable. I'm sorry I can't offer
- you anything to drink right now. After we talk for a little while
- we can have a cocktail or some wine.
-
- The interview proved interesting and gave him a good idea of
- what the couple hoped to accomplish. Donna indicated that she was
- very nervous, but added that she was raised to believe that it
- was sinful to wander from one's intended or chosen partner. Don
- was surprised to hear her say that she had had thoughts about
- other men just as any other woman would. She indicated that she
- would likely not want fear or jealousy to threaten her relation-
- ship.
-
- Jim was able to determine that her orgasms were generally
- standard, and she was in good physical and psychological health.
- She thought that it would be great to be able to fantasize about
- making love in another, more adventurous time. She wanted to be a
- girl on the Spanish Gold Coast who had been kidnaped by pirates
- aboard a frigate and rescued by a dashing swashbuckler who looked
- very much like Richard Gear. She thought that he was one of the
- most sexy men she had ever seen.
-
- Don was then interviewed, and Jim was satisfied that he too
- was sound and had normal fantasies. All of this excited Jim. He
- was happy that he had established a rapport with this lovely
- couple. Jim then said, "let's now get down to business. Donna, I
- am first going to show you how to relax so you can enjoy the
- experience." He moved a chair away from the table and placed it
- facing a blind corner of the room. Donna was instructed to sit in
- the chair and focus on a point on the wall. Jim began speaking to
- Donna and showed her how to relax more completely. Soon it was
- apparent to Jim that Donna would be a good subject. He put her
- into a light trance and continued to speak to her. Deeper and
- deeper she went. Soon she was very deeply asleep.
-
- Jim instructed her to remain in a deep trance and not to
- awaken until she was told to wake up. Don was simply amazed as he
- asked, "do you mean to tell me that she is completed hypnotized?"
- Jim assured him that she was. He went on to explain that he would
- do a few experiments to better illustrate what was happening. Jim
- turned to Donna and gave her a post-hypnotic suggestion that when
- she heard the words "the rain in Spain falls mainly in the
- plane," she would find herself on a desert island all alone. She
- would be on the beach. She could hear the gulls and the waves
- rolling against the shore. She would have the desire to take her
- clothing off and bask in the warm rays of the sun. She would be
- completely alone and could then do anything that she wanted.
-
- The suggestions was also give that from now on, when Jim
- snapped his fingers twice, she would fall into a very deep hyp-
- notic trance. He also gave her the ability to create any dream
- that she wanted to. All she had to do was to envision the person
- she wanted to be with, where she wanted to be and what she wanted
- to be doing; she would then say the word "Alpha" to herself,
- close her eyes, and she would fall into a deep sleep for ten
- minutes and have the dream she fashioned.
-
- At this point Donna was woken up slowly and told that she
- would remember nothing of the experience. She was also told that
- she would feel very refreshed and rested, as well as very sexy.
- "Now wake up feeling wonderful," Jim urged.
-
- Donna told Jim and Don that she felt good but really didn't
- think that it had worked. Jim had a self assured smile on his
- face and indicated to the couple that this was often the case but
- she really was very deeply asleep. She disagreed with Jim, but
- did indicate that she was grateful for being taught how to so
- deeply relax. She hadn't felt this good in a long time. Jim asked
- her if she would like a demonstration of post-hypnotic suggest-
- ion. She indicated that it would interest her. "The rain in Spain
- falls mainly in the plane," were Jim's next words.
-
- Donna got up from the chair as her eyes seemed to be focused
- on something far away. She kicked off her shoes as her fingers
- started to unbutton her blouse. Don couldn't believe his eyes.
- Donna was normally very modest about such things. Her thumbs
- hooked themselves inside of her slacks and down they came. She
- curled her arms up behind her back and unfasten her bra. There
- was a look of embarrassment and excitement on both men's faces.
- Don opened his mouth to speak not knowing whether he should do
- so. Jim looked at Don and said, "feel free to talk if you want
- to. She can't hear or see you."
-
- As her bra fell to the ground, she slipped her panties off
- and discarded them also. There she was in all of her lovely nude
- splendor. Her bold breasts spreading across her chest as she
- stretched feeling the warmth of the sun lick her body. Her but-
- tocks were flexed tight as she stood on her tip toes trying to
- get closer to the sun. She let out an appreciative moan as she
- lowered herself to the bed. Jim and Don watched as she lay there
- soaking up the sun. She soon turned over to offer her backside to
- the warmth. Jim's cock was hard now. Not only was he very excited
- sexually with this vision, he was excited that he was able to
- share this wonder with Donna and Don.
-
- Jim explained much of what was happening to Don. Soon Donna
- rolled over and began to squirm. Her hands went to her breasts
- and the thumb and forefinger of each hand were rolling her
- nipples gently. She squeezed her thighs together and began moan-
- ing. Don was very excited as he told Jim that he had never seen
- Donna touch herself. He was amazed at how erotic it was. Donna's
- left hand suddenly dropped to her soft public hair and her legs
- opened slightly. She was searching in the folds of her pussy. Her
- fingers were now wet with excitement.
-
- She gently ran her slippery fingers over the lips of her
- swollen pussy. Don was convinced that this was likely the hottest
- he had ever been. He wanted to rip his clothes off and fuck her
- like he had never fucked her before. Jim calmed him down and ad-
- vised him that there would be time for that later. The experiment
- should continue. Don agreed, but could not take his hand off of
- his rock-hard cock.
-
- Jim walked over to the bed and snapped his fingers twice. As
- soon as he did, Donna returned to her deep sleep. Jim instructed
- her that he would wake her soon. When she woke up, she would
- remember everything that occurred. She would remember it without
- embarrassment and feel very pleased with herself. Additionally
- when she heard the word "Beta" she would feel a mini climax and a
- tingling in her nipples. She was instructed to place herself un-
- der the sheets and wake up slowly.
-
- Soon Donna was awake. She simply starred at both men. "I
- can't believe it. It was one of the nicest dreams I ever had. It
- was so sexy. I didn't know I could get that turned on. Holly
- christ! My clothes are off. What happened to my clothes?" Donna
- asked.
-
- Don responded to her first, "you took them off when you were
- on the beach honey. It wasn't just a dream. It really happened.
- We saw everything. Do you feel OK?"
-
- "Yes I feel great, but I can hardly believe that I took my
- clothes off in front of Jim. I don't even ...." Donna began.
-
- "...Know me?" asked Jim. "No you don't, but apparently you
- felt comfortable enough with me to do just that. You can now do
- other wonderful things. Do you remember the post-hypnotic sug-
- gestion that I gave you about creating your own dreams?"
-
- She indicated that she did, and Jim urged her to try it now.
- Donna thought for a minute and said the word "Alpha" out loud.
- She soon fell into a deep sleep. Don and Jim watched what ap-
- peared to be a fitful sleep, but the looks on Donna's face were
- those of ecstasy and lust. They watched slight movements of her
- body as if she were having a wonderful sexy dream. In exactly ten
- minutes she woke up and sat bolt upright in the bed. She clutched
- the bed sheet to her breasts, but walked on her knees over to the
- two men. Both men had large smiles on their faces. She reached up
- and kissed Don. "It was absolutely wonderful honey," were her
- words.
-
- She offered her lips to Jim who hungrily accepted them. She
- have him a big kiss and said, "I don't know how to thank you Jim.
- These feelings are probably the best I've ever had. I am still so
- hot I don't know what to do with myself." Jim's cock hardened
- even more as Donna pressed her sheet-covered breasts against him.
- As she hugged him, he was offered the greatest view of her but-
- tocks over her shoulder.
-
- Jim, trying to keep his wits about him said, "and the nice
- thing about it is that you can do this anytime you want. I want
- to show you something else Donna. 'Beta!'" Donna sank back onto
- the bed and let the sheet fall from her body. Her eyes rolled
- slightly as the small climax began to diminish. "Anytime you want
- to get to small nut, just say the word 'Beta,'" Jim assured her.
- "Now I'm going to ask you both to come back tomorrow night if you
- would like. I want to work with Don and teach you both how to do
- some other amazing things." Donna got dressed, and she and Don
- thanked Jim as they left the room.
-
- The clock at the side of the bed read 11:37. Jim didn't
- really feel tired, and he wanted to see Bridgit again, so he
- freshened up and headed for the lounge. The lovely waitress
- seemed awfully happy to see him return. She came quickly over to
- his table and asked him if he needed anything. This time he told
- her, "you'll never know, but I'll settle for another drink."
-
- Bridgit said, "I'll get you the drink, but I would like to
- know." She pranced away with what appeared to be an extra effort
- at swinging her fanny. It didn't go unnoticed by Jim. He was so
- aroused after having seen the experience that Donna just had that
- he badly wanted to make love with Bridgit. He could think of
- little else.
-
- Soon she returned with his drink. This time when she placed
- it in front of him she intentionally lingered to expose her large
- breasts to his gaze. He took full advantage of it and said,
- "please tell me that you have fallen passionately in love with me
- and can't live without me."
-
- "I don't know that that is the case, but I would like to
- spend some time getting to know you better. It's a little slow
- right now. Would you like me to see if I can get off a little
- early," she asked.
-
- "I would love that," Jim hastened. He was wondering whether
- or should just be straight forward and ask her to his room, or if
- he should offer to take her someplace for a drink or coffee.
-
- He didn't have to wonder long. She returned to say that she
- could leave in fifteen minutes. "Would you like to just go up to
- your room and we could have something sent up?" she inquired.
-
- "That would be great. What if I go up and get the drinks or-
- dered so we won't have a wait? What do you like to drink?" Jim
- asked.
-
- "Scotch and water is fine. No, make is white wine. See you
- soon. I got the room number from the restaurant. OK, so I was a
- little curious," she said with a smile.
-
- Jim hurried to the room and placed the order for room serv-
- ice. He also ordered a sea food snack tray. The time wouldn't
- pass quickly enough. In a short time there was a knock at the
- door. He jumped to answer it. It was room service. He admitted
- the server, signed the check and quickly offered the tip. No
- sooner did he get the tray over to the table, he heard another
- knock at the door. His blood began to run more quickly. It was
- Bridgit. She was dressed in a lovely pastel sweater that provided
- sufficient accent to her lovely breasts and dark slacks that
- gratefully hugged her rounded buttocks. "Please make yourself
- comfortable," Jim offered.
-
- She sat at the table and told Jim that he shouldn't have
- gone to all this trouble. He assured her it was no trouble and
- joined her. They enjoyed some interesting small talk as they com-
- pleted the snacks. Bridgit asked Jim if he would mind if she
- freshened up a bit. Jim told her that his place was her place.
- She gave him a little kiss and moved toward the bath room. Jim
- was anxious to hold her in his arms. Soon he heard the water run-
- ning in the bath tub. He hadn't thought that she was this serious
- about freshening up. Apparently she was. Well, he could wait. He
- poured himself another glass of wine and settled down for the
- wait. Soon Bridgit called his name. He approached the door and
- asked if she needed anything. She asked him if he would object to
- washing her back. The smile spread across his face as he entered
- the bath room.
-
- She twisted to hang up the last remnant of her clothing and
- Jim was treated to a view of her exciting buttocks. Naked, they
- were even more exciting with the deep groove separating them.
-
- She turned to him and came toward him, and he watched
- shocked and fascinated as the twin breasts swayed from side to
- side, making the nipples dance. With a cute smile she stepped
- into the tub, bringing her hot sweet flesh within inches of his
- throbbing cock.
-
- He couldn't take his eyes off of her as she slid into the
- water and urged him to join her. His clothes fell like rain.
- Somehow they managed to twist their limbs so that they both fit
- well into the tub, her legs resting neatly on his and curled
- around his hips. She handed him the soap and asked him to wash
- her. His initial attempt was on her back, but soon the temptation
- proved too much for him and he concentrated on her bountiful
- breasts, covering them in lather.
-
- She giggled as his hands massaged the firm flesh and tweaked
- the hard nipples. He had an overwhelming urge to suck her begging
- nipples, but decided that the lather would likely not be to his
- liking. He confined himself to running his hands over her
- breasts, tweaking her nipples with his thumbs, making her shudder
- with excitement. Her red lips were parted and she was breathing
- heavily while her sensuous eyes were hooded, making her look like
- a feline predator waiting to spring on its prey.
-
- Jim knelt up and washed her flat stomach, taking his time,
- tantalizing himself until he could hold back no longer. He
- reached down into the forest that obscured the new object of his
- desire. He soaped the thick fur and then, using the soap he
- pushed the hair aside to reveal her rosy slit. He parted the
- puffy lips gently and eased a finger inside her volcanic hole.
-
- Bridgit moaned out loud and laced an arm around his neck and
- brought his face towards hers in a deep hungry kiss. Her tongue
- forced itself between his lips and into his mouth. It was fran-
- tic, agile and quick as it searched for Jim's tongue. He was
- still sliding his finger in and out of her hot cunt while his
- thumb rubbed her growing clit. His other hand was still squeezing
- her breasts and nipples. Their embrace became more and more pas-
- sionate and his cock was jerking around like a taunt fire hose.
-
- Finally they broke apart, both of them flushed with erotic
- desire. Bridgit stood up and stepped out of the tub grabbing a
- towel and began to dry herself off. She pulled Jim to his feet
- and wiped him dry. He couldn't remember the last time someone
- dried him. I reminded him of his childhood, but there was nothing
- child-like about the raging erection which she also paid atten-
- tion to.
-
- She dropped the towel to the floor as their warm, moist
- bodies met in a new embrace, and they kissed deeply once again.
- His stiff bone was pressed up against her hard belly as Jim
- noticed the bed which seemed to beckon to him. When they got to
- the bed, she again took the initiative. She pushed him back on
- the bed. He felt awkward as his legs dangled off the end of the
- bed. Her hands had found Jim's erect pole and were gently strok-
- ing it up and down. Bridgit held the hard cock upright as her
- lips lowered to meet it. He felt her lips close around it.
-
- His cock was getting wetter and wetter as she left a trail
- of warm saliva with each plunge, and his organ was jerking power-
- fully in the sheath of her lips. He could hear the erotic slurp-
- ing noises as she eagerly and expertly swallowed his pulsating
- ramrod to the back of her throat. Jim's hips were responding to
- her rhythm by lifting to meet her attack, penetrating her more
- deeply. Deeper and harder she sucked. Jim knew that he would not
- be able to withstand much more without loosing control. Jim
- stopped her with a groan of passion. "Wait, wait Bridgit. I don't
- want it to end yet," Jim pleaded.
-
- Jim began kissing her body. He sucked on her nipples as her
- moans came in harmony with his efforts. He reluctantly let a
- nipples escape as his lips traveled down her body, kissing and
- licking every inch of her flesh as he slowly slid down to his
- target area. He could feel her hands trying to hurry his journey,
- but he resisted and took his time, savoring the texture and taste
- of her flesh. Soon he reached the forest of public hair from
- which rose an intoxicating aroma of pussy juices. Her legs parted
- and he could see the pink, puffy lips nestled in the patch of
- hair, glistening with arousal.
-
- His tongue plunged into the hot lava of her love volcano. He
- knew that she would not release her grip on him until he sucked,
- licked and lapped her hot cunt to explosion. With his hands
- firmly holding her wiggling buttocks, he furiously drove his hard
- tongue into her body massaging the walls of her cunt, darting
- from side to side and gathering up the love juices. Soon
- Bridgit's cunt exploded and poured its cream inside Jim's waiting
- mouth. He drank her womanly nectar as if he would never have the
- chance to do this again. She screamed as her climax broke and
- seemed to swallow her up.
-
- Jim didn't want her to loose all of the excitement of her
- climax as he swiftly mounted her, and using his fist aimed the
- head of his eight inch rod into her very slippery pussy, parting
- the puffy lips and scouring through the hot liquids until his
- cock was fully embedded in her. He eased his hands under her
- ample ass cheeks and grasped the resilient flesh, pulling her up-
- ward as he shoved his cock yet deeper into her tunnel. Her body
- immediately responded and the embers of her previous climax
- flared into life. She started to meet every thrust with an upward
- heave of her hips.
-
- It was Bridgit's body that first broke the stride. Suddenly,
- her hips froze the rhythm and then started to jerk up and down
- very fast, thrusting her cunt more fiercely over Jim's huge or-
- gan. Her greasy pussy was endeavoring to swallow his cock whole
- and keep it in the greedy clutch of her vaginal muscles. She
- screamed in jolts. The fierce clutch of her wet cunt on his cock
- was too much for him to take. His back stiffened and arched while
- his cock attempted to find new depths. Very soon his cock pole
- began to erupt furiously into Bridgit's tight, hairy cunt hole.
- They slipped into sleep almost immediately afterward.
-
- The next morning when Jim awoke, Bridgit was gone. He found
- a note on hotel stationary wherein she excused herself and told
- him that she hoped to see him again soon. Jim read the note as he
- tried to blink away his sleep. He rolled around the bed remember-
- ing the wonderful evening. After a time of lovely thought, he got
- up and took a shower. He dressed and went down to the dining room
- to have some breakfast. When he returned, the red message light
- was flashing on his phone. He called down to the desk to find
- that there was a message for him to call Don.
-
- After speaking with Don, it was decided that they would
- again meet this afternoon at about two o'clock. Jim had brought
- his lap top computer with him and was able to get a little writ-
- ing in. He also wiled away part some of the day shopping and
- reading. He was anxious to meet with Don and Donna to see what
- other successes they could achieve.
-
- Two o'clock soon arrived and shortly thereafter there came a
- knock at the door. Jim went to the door and opened it with a
- smile. Donna's brown eyes were staring into his own, and Don was
- standing just behind her.
-
- "Please do come in," Jim said as he stepped aside. "Did you
- have a good evening last night?"
-
- Don hastened to respond, "I don't think we ever had such an
- exciting day in our lives. When we got home we continued to talk
- about the experience and conducted several experiments ourselves.
- Donna was able to have several dreams. I merely watched, and it
- was a very hot time. I was also able to use the post-hypnotic
- suggestion "Beta" to give her multiple minor orgasms. It served
- as a remarkable addition to our regular foreplay," said Don.
- Donna seemed a little embarrassed by the descriptive narrative.
-
- Jim explained that it was now Don's turn to experience the
- trance state. Don was asked to take a seat, and they got im-
- mediately under way. Jim helped Don relax through a method that
- requires the subject to flex and relax various parts of his body.
- Soon Don was completely relaxed, and Jim began speaking softly
- and clearly. After a short while Don was in the trance state. Jim
- continued to work with him and deepen the trance.
-
- In the minutes that passed, Jim taught Don how to use auto-
- hypnosis to hallucinate visually. He was able to change the
- sight, sound, taste and feel of his partner. His post-hypnotic
- suggestion was precipitated by the words "hypnosex partner." When
- he said or heard the words "come back" all of his senses would
- return to normal. He was also given the suggestion that whenever
- he heard the words "rock-hard cock," he would get an immediate
- erection. He was also told that when he said or hear the words,
- "relax it," his erection would subside. Jim woke him up slowly,
- assuring him that he would feel wonderful and well rested.
-
- As Don opened his eyes his head dropped to his hands. When
- asked how he felt, he answered that he felt great and wanted to
- know how he did. He was told that he did very well and was now
- capable of doing some remarkable things. "Go ahead and try it
- out," said Donna.
-
- Don repeated, "hypnosex partner," and stared at Donna in
- shear surprise. He got up and walked over to her, putting his
- hands around her waist. His lips sought hers as his right hand
- dropped to the cleft of her buttocks. They were beginning to get
- carried away when Jim spoke the words, "come back."
-
- Don was shocked at who he found in his arms. "I almost feel
- guilty Donna. You were someone else. I was kissing someone else
- and feeling her ass," Don said in wonder.
-
- "Was it exciting?" Donna asked. Don assured her that it was
- and told Jim that it was unbelievable.
-
- "Rock-hard cock," were the next words out of Jim's mouth.
- Immediately the front of Don's pants developed a huge bulge. Don
- was again amazed. He couldn't believe that his penis could be
- this hard on demand. He wanted to know how this was possible.
-
- Jim went on to draw an analogy for them. He inquired as to
- whether or not Don ever woke up in the morning, not necessarily
- horny, with a huge stiff. Don told him that he had. Jim continued
- to explain that an erection was merely blood rushing into the
- penis. There is a part in the brain that directs blood to the
- penis upon arousal. The mind controls so many of our functions.
- It is a simple matter to control this when all conditions are
- right. He also explained that often men question themselves about
- impotence because even when they want to get an erection, they
- sometimes can't. They begin to question themselves. If you ever
- get an erection upon waking up in the morning, your mind was
- likely relaxed and thinking about sex. We all have mental images
- that can make us aroused. Sometimes we don't know exactly what
- they are. Don's cock remained hard as Jim explained. The words
- "relax it," were then spoken, and Don's erection began to go
- down.
-
- "Now, let's work with Donna some more. OK with you Donna?"
- Jim asked. She responded in the affirmative and was asked to take
- a seat. She sat in the chair and was questioned about whether
- there was anything specific she wanted to learn how to do. She
- indicated to Jim that she was very impressed with what Don had
- been able to do, and she would like to be able to bring on hal-
- lucinations as well. Jim snapped his finger twice, and Donna's
- chin fell slowly to her chest in complete relaxation.
-
- He took her deeper and deeper into a wonderful sleep as he
- felt Don tap him on the shoulder. "Can she hear us?" Don asked.
- Jim indicated that she could hear unless directed not to. Don
- continued, "ask her not to hear our conversation so I can tell
- you something." Jim did this and urged Don to continue. Don said,
- "you know Jim, Donna and I spoke about quite a few things last
- night when we got home. At my urging, she told me that she would
- like to make it with another man but was afraid. She specifically
- said that she thought you were very sexy. Is there anything we
- could do to remove her anxiety about trying another man? I know I
- am ready to ignore jealousy. I trust her, but I want her to have
- it all. Do you find her desirable?"
-
- Jim assured him that, "she was indeed a very sexy woman. I
- think we can trade places in her mind, if you think she would
- like it."
-
- Don agreed. Jim spoke to Donna again, "you are now more
- deeply asleep than you have ever been before. When you awaken,
- Don will become Jim and Jim will be Don in every way. Jim will
- look like Don, sound like him, feel like him and taste like him.
- You will find yourself uncontrollably attracted to him and will
- need to feel him inside you. You will feel free to do anything
- with him that pleases you without regard for who else is in the
- room. In fact, because someone is watching you, you will become
- even more excited. When you hear me clap my hands twice, Jim and
- Don will again trade places and be themselves. you will remember
- nothing until I clap my hands twice." Jim also gave her the sug-
- gestion that she will be able to change Don any time she wished,
- just as Don had learned. Jim told her that she would wake up very
- slowly, feeling wonderful and refreshed.
-
- Donna began to open her eyes slowly. "I really can't remem-
- ber anything. Did it go well?" she asked and looked at Don. Don
- told her that everything went very well. She got up from the
- chair and moved toward Jim. "Honey, I don't really know why, but
- I have this uncontrollable urge to screw you eyes out. And oddly
- enough, I don't even care if Jim watches. What did you do to me
- Jim?" she asked of Don with an unusual sparkle in her brown eyes.
- Jim opened his arms as Donna fell into them with her mouth par-
- tially open.
-
- Don sunk into a chair next to the table with a curious look
- on his face. Jim looked over at him and Don nodded his head,
- giving authority to proceed. Jim could see Don's hand fall upon
- his already hard cock as his hands began to explore Donna's full
- breasts. Donna stepped back and removed her top in one quick mo-
- tion. She tore at the buttons to Jim's shirt. Soon they were all
- but naked. Only her panties remained as she returned to Jim's
- embrace, rubbing her pubic mound against his leg. Don settled
- back and unzipped his trousers. His thick cock was withdrawn, and
- he stroked its length as his eyes watched every move of Donna and
- her lover. Jim reached his hand inside of Donna's pink panties
- onto the swell of her buttocks. Squeezing the wonderfully tex-
- tured flesh of her fanny gave Jim all the more reason to become
- harder. Donna dipped in to his shorts, and her hand felt his cock
- length increase.
-
- The aroma of this lovely woman rose to meet Jim's nostrils.
- She felt the cream beginning to seep from the eye of his steel-
- like hammer. Panties and shorts were removed in speedy unison as
- they fell to the bed. Don was now stroking his huge cock more
- quickly. His balls were being tortured by his zipper. He stood up
- and removed his pants and shorts, continuing to beat his meat.
- Each time he stroked his cock, he saw something else that drove
- him crazy. Jim's hands were filled with breast flesh. He lowered
- his head to suck on the pert nipples and tweaked them softly with
- his teeth.
-
- Donna's groans were now music to Don's ears. Another man had
- his fingers in her pussy. Jim would pull the slick covered
- fingers from her gushing hole and rub the button of her ass hole.
- Moving slowly down from her nipples, Jim began kissing the swell
- of her belly, biting her lightly on the hip bones. This made her
- jump half way off the bed. She grabbed Jim's head and tried to
- push him into her hair-covered cunt. He resisted and continued
- his efforts slowly. His tongue traveled all around her love box,
- teasing the soft hairs and licking her thighs. Closer and closer
- his lips came to her love button. In a quick motion, Donna moved
- toward Jim's raging penis. Her lovely lips opened and she slid
- the length of Jim's cock into her mouth, sucking hard. Up and
- down this immense shaft her mouth moved. Don could see the trail
- of his wife's saliva on this man's thick bone.
-
- Jim mouth suddenly opened and covered Donna's swollen cunt
- lips. His tongue drove deeply into her hole as he tasted her cunt
- honey. He sucked on her clit, bringing it into full hardness. It
- was like a small spear between his hungry lips. Don's eyes were
- glued to them as he saw breasts moving like jello and buttocks
- rippling in rhythm with their oral movements. Suddenly, Donna
- stiffened, pulled Jim's cock from her mouth momentarily, slammed
- it deep inside her throat and climaxed in Jim's mouth. She poured
- her love juices into Jim's sucking mouth as her hips gyrated
- quickly against his cream-covered face. It seemed like it would
- last forever. Finally, her buttocks began to slow down. Her
- screams were muffled by the enormous bone in her throat. They too
- subsided. Jim was still very stiff as Donna removed him from her
- mouth. "Would you mind if we took a small break so I can have
- something to drink honey?" she asked.
-
- "Not at all Donna," Jim responded as he looked at Don and
- rolled his eyes. Donna looked over at Don with surprise as she
- saw his erect penis in his hands.
-
- "Ya know Jim, I don't really blame you. I guess we did get
- out of hand a little. It seems that Don and I have really turned
- you on from the looks of it. Now that is a thing to be proud of,"
- she said with a smile, about his cock, reaching for a water
- glass. Don felt a little self-conscious as he let his cock fall
- from his hands. Jim and Don both watched the sway of Donna's but-
- tocks and breasts as she walked slowly across the room with her
- water. Her entire body was a deep pink with exertion. She
- returned to Jim on the bed and offered him a sip. He took it
- gratefully.
-
- "Don, it seems like forever since I've seen another man's
- penis, and Jim's is great looking, don't you think?" Donna said.
-
- Jim responded, "well, I really don't get into dicks with the
- possible exception of my own, but I'm glad you like it."
-
- "You're not jealous honey?" Donna asked of Jim as she
- settled back into his arms. Her breasts flowed into the hollow of
- Jim's chest as she offered Don a view of her pink buttocks, her
- eyes searching for Don's cock.
-
- Jim said, "no Donna, I'm not jealous. In fact it would ex-
- cite me if you touched his cock. Jim said as he grinned over her
- head at Don. Don returned the grin and moved toward the bed.
- Donna rested the glass on the night stand as Don approached.
- Don's half-hard penis came within close proximity to her face.
- She began to reach up to touch it and stopped to look at Jim. He
- nodded his support, and she again reached for Don's cock. It took
- very little for Don's cock to rise again. She stared up at Don in
- a sheepish manner and began to stroke it. Jim's hand cupped one
- of her ample breasts as Don stepped closer. Don reached out and
- ran his fingers through her hair slowly, urging her lips nearer
- his now huge rod. Donna could see the fluid at the tip of Don's
- cock. She turned her ass to Jim and took the first few inches of
- Don's thick bone in her mouth. Donna took more and more of Don's
- penis into her mouth as Don saw Jim begin to manipulate Donna's
- hairy pussy. Jim then got on his knees and brought Donna to hers.
- Donna moved without loosing her grip on Don's penis. She reached
- around and grabbed Don's buttocks and pulled him deeper into her
- mouth.
-
- Jim moved behind Donna running his hands over her rounded
- ass cheeks. His hand dipped down into the crack of her ass and
- collected some of her juices. He raised his hand to his nostrils
- to savor the aroma of her womanhood. He stroked his bone into
- full erection as he placed saliva in his hand and applied it be-
- tween her bush to Donna's cunt lips. Aiming the arrow of his
- shaft at her gaping love tunnel, Jim eased his huge cock into
- Don's wife. He slowly worked his penis into her body until her
- could see the button of Donna's ass hole press against his hairy
- belly. He started to move in and out of her hole.
-
- Faster and faster his slick bone drove home. His balls were
- bouncing off of Donna's clit increasing her excitement. Jim could
- take no more as his eyes riveted on his juice-covered cock split-
- ting her cunt hairs as it drove into this musky tunnel. Her
- beautiful ass cheeks were in his hands wobbling wonderfully. It
- was too exciting. He began to grunt. As she felt him stiffen in-
- side of her squeezing sheath, she mashed her buttocks into his
- thighs to gain deeper penetration.
-
- Don was now driving his tool with increased fervor inside of
- his wife's sucking mouth. With the beauty of this rare moment,
- Donna felt both lovers go off at once. Gobs of thick cream were
- pouring into her slippery cunt hole. Don's jism squirted hotly
- into her sucking mouth. Her mind was spinning as she experienced
- one of the most earth-shaking climaxes in her memory. She col-
- lapsed beneath both men. All three participants remained motion-
- less for quite some time. It was Jim that first got up from the
- bed and went into the bath room. He washed up and returned to the
- room with his trousers on. He poured himself a drink and took a
- seat at the table. Don said, "is there any more of that? I think
- I need a drink too." Jim poured Don a drink and delivered it to
- bed side. Donna had the most wonderful smile on her face.
-
- She soon got up and moved toward the bath room. Jim thought
- how sexy this woman was. He asked Don after Donna was out of ear
- shot, "Do you feel OK about this Don?"
-
- "I'll tell you the truth, I do have some guilt feelings
- about it. I think they will go away without too much problem. I
- am concerned about Donna. How do you think she will fair?" asked
- Don.
-
- "Well, there's only one way to find out. We still have to
- change back remember?" stated Jim as Donna returned to the room.
-
- "Change back to what?" Donna quizzed while returning to "Jim
- on the bed.
-
- Jim responded first, "Donna, how do you feel about every-
- thing that has happened?"
-
- "I feel great. I have never felt so sexy. I have never had
- such a good climax. I don't really think I feel guilty, and now I
- am sure that I wouldn't be jealous if you made love to another
- woman either Don," Donna said.
-
- "I am not Don," Jim stated as he clapped his hands twice.
- Donna had a look on her face as if she didn't know where she was.
- Her head turned from one to the other and back again.
-
- "Holy christ! Holyyyyyyy chrissssst! You two switched
- places. Don do you mean that I was making love to Jim before you
- agreed to let me touch his cock?" Donna asked incredulously.
-
- "That's it honey. You wanted to. You said that you wanted
- to. I wanted you to. I know that he did. Everything happened the
- way it should have, and I love you more than ever. Please tell me
- you enjoyed it and you're not feeling bad," Don pleaded.
-
- Donna was comfortable with the events of the day. Twice
- before they left she experimented with making love to two of her
- favorite actors. Once she made it with both of them. Jim was not
- really sure whether Don was making love with anyone in par-
- ticular. He knew that he could if he wanted to. Jim felt great
- about what he was able to do for Don and Donna as well as for
- himself. This was one of the hottest long weekends he had ever
- had. They agreed to do this again one day, and Jim hoped that he
- would have a chance to see Bridgit again also.
-
-
- CHAPTER SIX - MIND SEX
-
- A sweltering unseasonable heat met Jim as he left the of-
- fice. He had been so busy with the rigors of a new week that he
- hadn't even the opportunity to stop for lunch. Just as well, he
- thought. It wouldn't hurt to shave about three pounds or so. Jim
- fired up the air conditioner and headed for home.
-
- His mind wandered to a new computer bulletin board friend he
- had met the previous day. Ed seemed like an average guy with an
- interest in improving his sex life. He and his wife Linda lived
- in a little town near Pittsburgh, were in their forties, appeared
- to be devoted to one another, but something seemed to be missing.
- Ed and Linda weren't alone. Many couples experience this common
- phenomenon after being married for many years. Ed was interested
- in breathing a little new life into their relationship.
-
- Jim had been jumping around the computer system from door to
- door when he was paged by Ed. As most people, Ed seemed in-
- credulous about the use of hypnosis in sex. He couldn't believe
- that so many wonderful things could be accomplished by the use of
- hypnosis. It all seemed supernatural and frankly, so much bull.
-
- After Jim had the opportunity to share some of the methods
- and analogies of hypnosis, Ed became more interested and wondered
- whether this may be the direction he should take. Jim's biggest
- challenge seemed to be convincing Ed that is was normal to want
- to make sex more exciting. In response to Jim's questions, Ed ad-
- vised him that he and Linda had never actually shared any fan-
- tasies with one another. Ed had wanted to experiment with
- threesomes as one time, but Linda seemed to be somewhat put out
- about it. She had never indicated an interest in making it with
- anyone other than Ed. Jim advised Ed to try to draw Linda's in-
- terests out through conversation and to get back to him so he
- could prepare an approach for them.
-
- The following evening when Jim signed on to the system there
- was electronic mail for him. He always got excited when there was
- a message for him. It was a lot like getting a letter that didn't
- have one of those little windows in it that meant the dirty "I"
- word - invoice. Ed indicated that he was able to determine one
- significant thing in his conversation with Linda. She was crazy
- about Patrick Swazee. She had indicated that although she was
- devoted to Ed, Patrick could park his shoes under her bed anytime
- he wanted to. Ed shared that he was a little jealous, but oddly
- enough, somewhat sexually excited by the prospect of Linda making
- it with someone like that.
-
- Jim prepared a message to leave in the electronic mail sys-
- tem for Ed. He indicated that chances were likely that Linda
- could mentally substitute Ed for Patrick Swazee. He cautioned Ed
- that much of the success of this effort had to do with whether or
- not he did anything to make Linda feel guilty. If they would like
- to try it, Jim would be happy to help them. He went on to say
- that it would probably take a good deal of convincing on Ed's
- part to get Linda to agree. Instead of visiting the house, Jim
- wanted to know what interests they had that would enable him to
- meet them socially. He signed off and waited for Ed's reply.
-
- The next time he signed on to the system another message was
- waiting for him. Ed indicated that he thought that Linda found
- the idea to be exciting but had some concerns about hypnosis and
- the proverbial trust factor. They didn't know Jim and were a
- little concerned about meeting him. Ed also explained that each
- Wednesday he and Linda went to a local bowling alley with several
- other duffers. They would be agreeable to meeting Jim there but
- didn't want any of their friends to know that they were meeting
- him for this purpose.
-
- Jim answered that he would meet them at the bowling alley
- and maintain a discrete approach to the matter. He hadn't been
- offended by their concern. It was natural, and Jim had encoun-
- tered this skepticism almost every time he approached a situation
- such as this. He made plans to meet with Ed and Linda and felt
- confident that he would be able to help them in one fashion or
- other. Each time Jim got involved in a situation like this was
- erotic for him. It brought back so many exciting memories.
-
- Wednesday had arrived, and the work day had come to an end.
- Jim stood at his mirror combing his hair and straightening his
- shirt collar. Assured that everything looked presentable, he got
- into the car for his short journey to the bowling alley. This was
- such a beautiful time of the year for a ride. The trees began to
- fill with green, flowers painted the scene and the fresh air
- filled his wandering mind. Pulling into the bowling alley parking
- lot, Jim reviewed the available parking spaces and selected one
- close to the door. He could always tell what kind of people fre-
- quented a place by the look of the parking lot. This seemed to be
- a nice bunch of folks by the type and number of cars adorning the
- lot.
-
- There was a nice looking mix of people in the place. Adjoin-
- ing the bowling alley was a nicely accented lounge with soft rock
- playing. Jim perused the lanes and saw that Ed and Linda could
- have been any of seven different couples. He decided to take a
- seat and wait for direction. One couple did seem to snatch peeks
- at him more than any other. It appeared as though they were wait-
- ing for someone. Soon one of the males of a couple foursome wan-
- dered over with a towel in his hand. "Jim?" said the man.
-
- "That's me. You must be Ed. How are they rolling for you?"
- Jim inquired. While waiting for his answer, he began sizing up Ed
- and trying to figure out which of the ladies were Linda. It
- really didn't matter as both of them were lovely looking ladies.
-
- "I think my balls are bigger than the ones we are using. I
- bowl so badly that you have to have big balls to embarrass your-
- self by bowling in front of everyone," he laughed.
-
- Jim assured him that he had plenty of company and that his
- main claim to fame had never been bowling either. After some ad-
- ditional small talk, Ed invited Jim over to meet Linda and their
- friends.
-
- Amenities having been exchanged with Linda, Karen and Joe,
- Ed explained that Jim was a computer friend that they had met on
- the computer bulletin board and they were going to have a drink
- and discuss some of their computer ideas. He asked Karen and Joe
- to join them.
-
- Jim took a spectator's position and watched as the bowlers
- plied their hobby. It was Linda's turn to toss the ball. Not
- being an expert, Jim watched Linda make her initial approach. It
- soon dawned on him that her approach was not what interested him.
- Linda was about 5'5" tall and about 125 pounds of loveliness. As
- Linda picked up her ball from the return, she grasped it in both
- hands in front of her. This movement provided the loveliest view
- of her cleavage; soft white breasts with a healthy texture that
- captured the attention of most men in the area.
-
- His eyes were then drawn like magnets to her wonderfully
- shaped buttocks. Her slacks provided cover but left very little
- to the imagination. They were so perfectly lifted and separated,
- and they danced so artistically as she made the short trip to
- release her ball. He thought that he might just have to take up
- this game on a regular basis just to return to this lovely view.
-
- After the four bowlers had sufficiently tired themselves
- with their less-than-300 game, they stowed their equipment and
- headed for the lounge. Having been seated and drinks ordered, Jim
- explained that he was a sociologist, worked with behavior
- modification and came to find that he and Ed shared many common
- interests about computers. Shortly thereafter, Karen and Joe ex-
- cused themselves so that they could pick up their son at baseball
- practice.
-
- Linda, Ed and Jim all seemed to offer a sigh of relief as
- the couple left. Additional drinks were ordered and the conversa-
- tion continued. Ed began to offer apologies for his comments to
- their friends, but Jim stopped him with a raised hand. "There's
- no need to apologize. This is your business, and if I don't un-
- derstand, I don't have any business being here. My interest is in
- seeing you both learn to enjoy life and one another more. I get
- off on it. Some people collect stamps. I collect happy people.
- It's erotic as well as meaningful," Jim smiled.
-
- "I hope that's not all you get off on," Linda offered with
- her own smile. She appeared to be somewhat attracted to Jim as
- well. Jim felt several times as though she had been stealing
- glances at him, but he couldn't figure if it was that she was
- concerned about him being there or happy that he was.
-
- "No Linda, not at all. I'm just as normal as the next guy,
- but I'm sure there would be people that would disagree with me on
- that. If you don't mind, I would like to be candid with you from
- the beginning. Am I correct in assuming that you are both inter-
- ested in improving both your relaxation techniques and your sex
- lives?" Jim asked as he casually raised his eyebrows.
-
- Having received a nod from them both, Jim went on. "The mind
- determines what happens and how it is perceived. The reason that
- we get sexually excited is that the mind sends messages from the
- brain to various parts of the body. In a man's case, blood is
- sent to the penis, it fills, expands and becomes rigid. Very much
- the same thing occurs when a woman becomes excited mentally. Once
- again, our brain tells our system to increase the blood flow to
- the extremities. The breasts, nipples and buttocks become more
- sensitive as the nerves are exposed because of an increased pres-
- sure of the blood supply. Mucous membranes are squeezed by the
- blood flow which provides lubrication to the vagina. The inner
- and outer lips of the vulva expand and become heavy.
-
- "Our mind makes these things happen. Much of it has to do
- with what we have programmed ourselves to consider sexy. That is
- why we refer to men as tit men, ass men, leg men and the like.
- Smell provides a real turn on for some people. Some folks are ex-
- cited visually, while others can only be turned on by touch.
- Again, the mind is doing these things for us and to us. As time
- goes by, many people require additional or different stimuli to
- provide excitement. You've heard the expression, 'variety is the
- spice of life,' I am sure. That is what the expression refers to.
-
-
- "Almost all of society has their secret turn-ons. Many don't
- speak of them, but most have them. My wife, for instance, never
- demonstrated much interest in anything other than infrequent mis-
- sionary style sex. She tried to please of course, but sex was not
- very exciting for her. She never mentioned fantasies. I took for
- granted that she didn't have them, until one day she said some-
- thing that led me to believe that she had. I questioned her about
- it. Too immediately she denied that she ever thought of anyone
- but me. After additional prompting, she admitted that she may
- have had fantasies but didn't have the courage to share them be-
- cause it wasn't normal for a "good wife" to think of anyone
- sexually but her husband.
-
- "This conversation occurred while we were in bed. As I was
- able to pry more out of her, she noticed that I was not getting
- angry. In fact, I was getting aroused; more aroused than she had
- seen me in quite some time. Before the night was over we had made
- love three times and climaxed with more pleasure than we ever
- had. After that, fantasy had a place in our hearts and in our
- pants. Sex had become better and more meaningful. I guess that's
- one of the reasons that we are still together and enjoy one
- another so much sexually. I was able to assure her that jealousy
- had no strength or place in our relationship so long as emotion
- wasn't diverted from each other. I would be jealous if I believed
- that she loved someone more than me, but it only served to excite
- me to think of her making it with someone else," Jim concluded.
-
- Linda seemed to be amazed at Jim's honesty in explaining how
- he perceived fantasy and jealousy. "Have you or your wife ever
- made love to someone else Jim?" she inquired.
-
- With a slight smile begin to curl on his lips, Jim remarked,
- "On several occasions we have experimented. Jealousy did occur
- the first time for both of us. Fortunately, our juices took over
- and the situation was so hot, a wonderful balance resulted. Af-
- terward, when we discussed it, our discussion just made us more
- excited. We were left with a better understanding of our own
- jealousy. Once I realized that although it turned her on, she was
- also doing it for me, my jealousy went away and what was left was
- pure excitement."
-
- "Quite honestly, you have captured my interest," Linda said.
- "Would you be interested in trying to help us achieve some of the
- things that hypnosis has to offer?"
-
- "If you are both not just interested to try it but hungry to
- master it, I'd be happy to help you. This isn't something that
- you put a halfhearted effort into. You should commit to submit
- your mind to it and attempt to practice periodically to improve
- you own ability. When would you like to start?" Jim asked.
-
- Linda looked at Ed for approval and direction. Seeing no ob-
- jection, she said, "well it's not too late now if you wouldn't
- mind following us to our place. It's only about a mile and a half
- down the road, and it's in the direction you'd be traveling."
-
- Jim looked at his watch and agreed to follow them to their
- home. He asked them to think about what they would like to ex-
- periment on while they were driving back to the house. They
- gathered their equipment, left a tip on the table and began the
- short trip to their home. Jim followed, pleased that he had been
- able to give them some initial good direction about hypnosis.
-
- The trip was indeed short, and soon they had arrived at
- their destination. Linda and Ed lived in a lovely neighborhood.
- Their house and grounds were well maintained. The inside of the
- house was furnished in a lovely fashion. Jim thought to himself
- how proud he was that he had read these people correctly. They
- seemed to be a very nice, average couple with their heads screwed
- on right. After they were settled and Linda had prepared drinks
- and some snacks, Jim asked, "did you discuss what you would like
- to work on with hypnosis?"
-
- Ed began, "we did talk about it a little, Jim. Linda and I
- think that you may have something there with the jealousy theory
- of yours. Both of us are willing to try making it with someone
- else. We have agreed that if either of us develop a problem with
- it we will stop and scrap the idea. Nothing ventured; nothing
- gained. We believe that we are mature enough and love each other
- enough that we can overcome it." Linda illustrated her agreement
- by nodding her head, but she said nothing.
-
- Jim, in turn, placed each of them into deep hypnosis. They
- were both excellent subjects. Much of it had to do with Jim's ex-
- planation of what would occur and their commitment to their sub-
- mission. He gave them each post hypnotic suggestions that would
- enable them to enter a deep trance state each time Jim snapped
- his fingers twice while looking them in the eyes.
-
- Through the use of additional suggestions Jim established
- that in Ed's eyes Linda would become Kim Bassinger and in Linda's
- eyes Ed would be Patrick Swazee. They would both be extremely
- horny. They also did not have to waste time with amenities. He
- increased their sensitivity, increased the intensity and length
- of their respective climax and ended by giving them the instruc-
- tions on how and when they would wake up. Additionally, Jim
- would not be visible to them. Both were woken and Jim retreated
- to a chair in the corner of the room to observe.
-
- Ed sat there looking in awe at Linda. She was just as cap-
- tured by Ed. They both stood and immediately began removing one
- another's clothing. Jim felt like a voyeur, but it was very ex-
- citing. Linda was a knock-out and he could feel his cock begin to
- lengthen. It was like watching his own personal porn film with
- the added excitement that he helped write the script. He watched
- as Ed's hands went to Linda's heavy, naked breasts. Ed's eyes
- gradually lowered to view this lovely spectacle. He tweaked her
- lovely hardening nipples and filled his hands with tit flesh.
-
- Linda moved her hands to Ed's now-naked buttocks and
- squeezed as she offered her hot lips to him. His thick penis
- began its upward climb to erection leaving a slight trail of
- seminal fluid on Linda's baby blue panties. As his hands sneaked
- inside the waist band of her panties and he filled his hands with
- her ample ass cheeks, a deep moan escaped her lips into his hot
- mouth. Jim watched as Linda's buttocks were exposed to his view.
- His rod was now rock hard and straining for a volcanic release.
- Linda's full buttocks were pressed together and separated inter-
- mittently. Jim could see the deep crevice of her ass and the dark
- patch of cunt hair. The smell of lust filled his nostrils and in-
- creased his own excitement.
-
- Soon Linda dropped to her knees and placed Ed's extended
- meat gently into her mouth. Ed squeezed his ass tight as he
- pushed forward to gain depth. Linda lifted his balls and massaged
- them gently as her wet mouth surrounded his straining cock. Each
- time he pulled slightly out of her mouth, Jim was able to see the
- residue of her saliva coating his huge penis; preparing it for
- its trip into the depths of her slippery and swollen pussy lips.
- Never had Jim seen such an erotic sight. He almost felt part of
- the action, and his hand began to massage the grand lump in his
- own pants.
-
- Gently, Ed lifted Linda into his arms and headed for the
- couch. He lower her as her breasts swayed like oceans of heavy
- fluid contained only by the shores of flesh that surrounded them.
- Her nipples were hard and extended. The tight nipple flesh pulled
- hard at the ample breast which surrounded each. After settled in
- a reclining position, Linda felt her legs being separated by Ed's
- strong hands. The muff of cunt hair which encircled her deep
- honey pot separated to frame a slick pink gully. Jim watched as
- her love cream seeped out of her hole and ran down into the deep,
- warm crack of her ass to bathe her tight, quivering ass hole.
-
- Ed's lips began at the knee on the inside of Linda's thigh.
- Never was he this hot. His normally thick cock was as rigid as an
- iron bar and felt like lead. It became so hard that he could feel
- his hairy balls squeezed tightly against his body. His lips con-
- tinued to move, painting Linda's inner thigh with hot saliva.
- Closer and closer they came to her gaping hot tunnel. The
- fragrance of her wet sex visited his senses and made him tingle
- with added excitement. Linda could feel his slightly rough face
- teasing its way toward the magnet of her dripping, hair-covered
- pussy lips. His hands continued to test the weight of her jig-
- gling tits. Each time the palms of his hands brushed her tight
- nipples it sent waves of excitement to her straining clitoris.
-
- On his nose he could feel the moist hair which covered her
- quivering cunt. Reaching from behind, spreading her tight but-
- tocks, Ed used his fingers to spread the lips of her love tunnel.
- Ever so gently he pressed his hard tongue into her fuck pit. Jim
- removed his hand from his laboring penis, concerned that it would
- ejaculate prior to their completion. His eyes remained glued to
- the hot action. Linda was hotter than she had ever remembered
- being. She swallowed Ed's expanded cock, and he drove it into the
- depths of her throat with his 5'11", 155 pound frame. She could
- feel Ed's hairy balls rest on her chin as she filled her hands
- with his buttocks and pulled him yet harder toward her. Grinding
- her slick pussy into his gaping mouth, she could feel the weight
- of her breasts as they bounced in the air and tingled her rubbery
- nipples.
-
- Ed broke the lock that they had placed their convulsing
- bodies in. Turning her on her knees to present her taunt buttocks
- to his gaze and aim, Ed leaned her soft breasts against the couch
- and filled his hand with his own thick organ. Stroking it several
- times to bring it to yet new length, Ed placed the spear-like tip
- at the door of her womanhood. Linda couldn't help herself as she
- pressed backward trying to prematurely swallow his member with
- her hairy, dripping sheath. Ed soon rewarded her as he smeared
- love juices over the tip of his meat and began pressing its
- length into the depths of her hole. Deeper and deeper it
- traveled. What a vision! He could see the thick cock pole slip
- effortlessly into the dark canyon of wet heat. As he withdrew, Ed
- could see the evidence of her own juices glistening on his bone.
-
- Jim watched as the strokes increased in intensity, speed and
- depth. The sound of Ed's thighs smacking against Linda's firm ass
- was music to his ears. Jim could see Linda's ass wiggle as she
- screwed it back to receive Ed's advances. Her breasts jiggled so
- voluptuously that Jim's fuck bone almost went off without him
- touching it. His gaze traveled to Linda's face. The look on her
- face was a combination of angel and demon. Her earthy grunts gave
- him new reason to maintain erection. He loved the sound of
- pleasure, and there was no doubt that Linda had never felt so
- much unadulterated bliss. She was bucking wildly as the unrelent-
- ing cock drove deep into her cavernous pussy.
-
- The fever pitch that they had attained was soon met with the
- ecstasy they sought. Linda was screaming, "fuck that deep cunt
- Patrick. Fuck my hole with your hot meat and pour your come into
- my guts." She was indeed being made love to by Patrick Swazee. He
- wanted her and he was taking her.
-
- "You feel so damn wonderful Kim. Take my bone in your hole
- and don't let go. I want to pump my cock into you until it falls
- off," Ed responded. His cock was in Kim Bassinger's tight pussy
- and his hands were squeezing her rubbery ass cheeks. All at once,
- Ed threw his head back and began a series of low grunts as he
- pumped his cream into Linda's pounding body. As if playing her
- part in an orchestra, Linda buried the top of her head into the
- couch and tossed her cunt up toward Ed driving bone. "Yes, Yes,
- Yes, Harder, Harder, Now, Now, Ohhhhhh!" she screamed.
-
- Soon they were spent and laying together in a half sleep.
- They were too tired to move or didn't care to. Jim placed them
- both into another trance. He gave them post hypnotic suggestions
- that they would wake up feeling wonderful, well-rested and remem-
- ber everything that occurred during the love making experience at
- the count of three.
-
- "One, two, three; awaken feeling wonderful and sexy," Jim
- said as he clapped his hands loudly. They both opened their eyes
- slowly. Their faces were graced with the most wonderful smile,
- but each of them appeared to have experienced some embarrassment.
- Jim couldn't quite tell whether it was guilt or not. "How do you
- feel?:
-
- Linda began with a smile, "I feel like a truck hit me - but
- right in the correct place. It was a truck I have wanted to be
- hit by for a long time. I can't really believe that Patrick
- Swazee made love to me." She soon noticed that she hadn't a
- stitch of clothes on. As Jim saw her concern, he offered an af-
- ghan for her to cover up.
-
- "I don't think I have ever had a hotter experience. I was
- convinced that Linda was Kim Bassinger. No -- Kim Bassinger can
- not be that good. This is unbelievable. I can't wait to start
- again. Thank you Jim," Ed said meaningfully.
-
- "There's no need to thank me. I was just the facilitator.
- You and Linda made it all happen. The next time we get together,
- I want to teach you both how to be anyone you want, with anyone
- you want, wherever you want to be and as long as you want to be
- there," Jim said. "Now I have a little drive ahead of me, and I
- must be going. Beat's the hell out of bowling, doesn't it? Sit
- tight. I'll show myself out. Leave me a message on the computer
- and let me know if you have any suggestions on how to improve the
- process."
-
- Jim wasn't out the door before Ed and Linda were deeply in-
- volved in their own new experiment. Jim couldn't get home quickly
- enough so he could take care of his own hard business. On the
- trip home his mind wandered to pat himself on the back for
- another success story. These two were one of the hottest couples
- he had ever helped. It didn't do him any harm either.
-
-
- CHAPTER SEVEN - MIND SEX
-
- July of '91 had to be one of the most sweltering heat waves
- in history for the mid west. Jim was sure that there was a direct
- correlation between the heat and his libido. He seemed to stay
- horny all of the time. He had to "get off" each night before
- going to sleep, and he woke up with a cock hard enough to chop
- oak trees. He knew that he was ready for a new adventure.
-
- Recently, he joined a new computer bulletin board service in
- Cleveland. It really seemed to be a great board because it had a
- matching service that provided an outline of all of the sub-
- scribers and what their interests were. He had pulled up a list
- of about thirty singles or couples that were interested in meet-
- ing him.
-
- Sometimes the conversations got so hot on the computer that
- he couldn't help but stroke his tool while trying to type in
- responses. Carla was one of the most exciting new contacts he had
- made. Her profile indicated that she was married, 39 years old,
- 5'5" tall, 135 pounds, long brown hair, blue eyes and hot to
- trot. During one of their chats, she indicated that hypnosis in-
- terested her, but she didn't know much about it. They had made
- arrangements to meet so that Jim could better explain the process
- and benefits.
-
- Jim arrived at the little town just east of Cleveland at a
- little before seven o'clock on the agreed upon evening. By seven
- o'clock he was parking the car in front of the address that he
- had been given. Walking toward the door, he wondered how Carla
- and her husband, Tom would be. To his pleasant surprise, the door
- was answered by an extremely lovely creature wearing a small hal-
- ter top that barely contained a remarkable set of breasts, a
- short white skirt that accented her plentiful buttocks and high
- heals that gave her legs the most interesting and seductive
- curves. There seemed to be one bonus after the other. Her lovely
- hair fell in soft curls to frame the face of an angel. "Please
- come in Jim," she said with what appeared to be a pleased look on
- her face.
-
- Jim stepped into the foyer and extended his hand in greet-
- ing. Carla accepted his hand, cupped it and pulled it into her
- breast as she kissed him on the cheek. He could already feel the
- heat develop in his loins. Her eyes seemed to be memorizing him
- as she said, "Come in to the den and have a seat while I get you
- something to drink. Tom will be here in just a little while. I
- sent him out for a few things. What would you like to drink?"
-
- "A little demon rum and some diet cola if you have it,
- Carla. You have a lovely place," Jim offered as his eyes drank of
- her form gliding across the room toward the bar. This was an ass
- that he wanted to forever remember. It wasn't that her skirt was
- that tight. It was the material that seemed to cling in just the
- right fashion to reveal each ass cheek in all its glory. They
- moved like a symphony with each step she took. Having manufac-
- tured Jim's drink and preparing one for herself, Carla returned
- to Jim and offered one of the glasses. Her return trip was just
- as exciting. Her soft breasts bounced appealingly during her
- return. She held her arms slightly away from her body as she
- carried the drinks. This seemed to accent her ripened nipples.
- Jim thought that she may becoming as excited by the prospects as
- he was.
-
- "Good heavens. You are a lovely woman, Carla. I don't think
- that I can keep my mind on anything with the way you look," Jim
- said.
-
- With a devilish smile, Carla said, "do you want me to change
- or cover something up?"
-
- "I can think of a thing or two that I would like to see you
- cover up, but please don't change on my account," he responded with a chuckle.
-
- "Do you mean covering your long, hot cock with my tight,
- hairy cunt hole while you suck on my big tits and bite my juicy
- nipples? Or maybe cover up your thick bone with my lips while I
- suck the last bit of cream out of your big balls." In a flash she
- had pulled up her halter top and her huge breasts bounced free.
- "Conceivably, I could grease up these big knockers and let you
- titty fuck me and come on my erect nipples," she said in a soft
- tone with a matter-of-fact look on her face.
-
- Jim almost fell over backward in the chair he was in. Carla
- began laughing, pulled down her top and said, "I'm just kidding
- Jim. I hope that we do get to that point, but I just wanted to
- see the look on your face.
-
- "You did take me by surprise," Jim smiled. "I do have to ad-
- mit that you have two of the most remarkable tits I have ever
- seen." If this was any indication of what was in store for Jim,
- he knew he had made the right choice to visit. His cock stayed
- hard as they continued their conversation. Suddenly, they were
- interrupted by the phone ringing. Carla got up from her chair and
- made her way over to the phone. Jim could not take his eyes off
- her swaying buttocks and almost spilled his drink.
-
- Carla spoke softly, and Jim could not hear what she was
- saying. After a short time she returned and explained that Tom
- had gotten tied up and wouldn't be able to join them for about an
- hour or so. She asked Jim if he could explain the hypnosis
- process. This he did. He went into enough detail to explain how
- the trance state was induced and what could be accomplished
- through the use of hypnosis.
-
- "Could you make me believe that you or I are someone or
- something other than who or what we are?" she asked leaning
- toward him and offering a lucid view of her stunning cleavage.
-
- "I really can't do anything, Carla. I am only your guide.
- You actually accomplish all of these things yourself. You can
- lengthen the duration of your climax, make various parts of your
- body more sensitive than normal or turn yourself or others into
- anyone or anything you can imagine," he answered.
-
- "Let's not wait, Jim. Put me into a trance now so I can see
- what you're talking about," Carla pleaded.
-
- "First I would like to just do some relaxation exercises. It
- will enable me to determine what your ability currently is and
- decide how far to go today. Is that OK with you?" he asked.
-
- "You're the boss. Just don't turn me into a chicken or make
- me chase cars," she teased.
-
- Jim placed her in an upright chair and began to induce the
- trance state. She seemed to be responding rather well so he con-
- tinued his efforts using the escalator approach. She was brought
- lower and lower into the depths of her own mind. He then relaxed
- each major muscle group by lightly touching the area and drawing
- attention to it. This part was difficult for Jim because he had
- to maintain his professionalism while touching her wonderful
- body.
-
- After a couple of tests to determine depth, Jim began to
- give Carla post hypnotic suggestions that would serve to
- demonstrate what she would be able to accomplish. He indicated to
- her that she would not feel any different and would probably not
- think that she had been asleep. Her nipples would not become
- rigid unless her left ear was touched. Once that happened her
- nipples would become as rigid as marbles.
-
- He told her that whenever her left knee and left elbow were
- touched at the same time, she would feel the pressure of hungry
- lips on her nipples. Additionally, if these areas were slightly
- shaken, she would feel a light electric shock sensation in her
- nipples.
-
- He then indicated to her that when she felt herself reaching
- orgasm, she would be unable to come unless she was dancing nude.
- When she started coming, all she had to do to double the inten-
- sity of the orgasm was to pinch her nipples. If this night she
- was made love to, she would be unable to reach a climax unless
- Jim pushed her left nipple like a button. When this occurred, she
- would have the most significant orgasm of her life.
-
- In order to more easily go into a trance the next time, Jim
- gave her another post-hypnotic suggestion. When he snapped his
- fingers twice and told her to fall into a deep sleep, she would
- immediately do so. She was asked and indicated that she under-
- stood each suggestion. Jim told her that at the count of three
- she would awaken, remember as much as she liked and feel terrific
- and sexy.
-
- At the count of three Carla's eyes opened slowly and she had
- an incredulous smirk on her face. She said, "I don't feel as if
- anything happened, Jim."
-
- "You don't always feel as though something has happened. It
- is only an altered state of consciousness. It's not actually
- sleep. However, now you have abilities that you have never had
- before," Jim explained.
-
- "I don't feel any different, but all of this talk about sex
- has made me awfully horny. I can feel it building in me and I
- want to explode," she said almost apologetically.
-
- "You are not all that horny, Carla. Your nipples are not
- hard and they can't get hard unless we impose one of the suggest-
- ions I gave you earlier," Jim assured her.
-
- Carla looked at him as if her were crazy, "my nipples are
- almost always hard, Jim." She looked down at her breasts but did
- not see the tell-tale impressions in her halter top. When she
- raised her eyes to look at Jim, she had a look of disbelief on
- her face. "This is insane. I hope to hell that you haven't taken
- something away from me. The sensitivity of my nipples are criti-
- cal, Jim.
-
- Jim said, "it only takes a second to fix. I want you to try
- to make your nipples hard, Carla. Touch them, think of the hot-
- test experience in your life, pinch them, pull on them or even
- touch your pussy. When you are convinced that you have done
- everything possible, let me have a try." She followed Jim's sug-
- gestions point by point. First she removed her top. Her nipples
- were lovely large patches adorning her breasts, but they were
- flat and lifeless. She touched them gently at first and then be-
- came more demanding. With her eyes closed tightly, she pulled and
- pinched at the lovely pink patches to no avail. She began to
- twirl the nipple of her left breast and her other hand reached
- down into the heated gap between her legs.
-
- "It feels great, but I can't seem to bring any life into
- them. Please tell me that you will take this away," she said al-
- most in a panic. He walked over to her and told her to keep her
- eyes on her nipples. Then he raised his hand and touched her left
- ear. Suddenly her nipples began to harden right in front of her
- eyes. They became towering bundles of rigid flesh. They started
- out pink and as they continued to grow they became almost red. A
- smile soon replaced the frown and she lifted her breasts, began
- to shake them and said, "all right! Now I have my lovely nipples
- back again. You scarred the hell out of me, Jim. It is possible
- that it was only a coincidence though. It could be the tempera-
- ture in this room or apprehension about being so near a
- stranger."
-
- "Would you like to go on to the next step of the
- demonstration?" asked Jim. She indicated that she would. Jim
- knelt down next to Carla and touched her left knee and left elbow
- at the same time. Immediately her eyes shot open wide and another
- look of disbelief found itself on her face.
-
- "Jim, this is unbelievable. I actually feel a wet pressure
- on my nipples. It feels like searching lips," she said. Jim
- removed his hands and the sensation went away. "Oh Jim, why did
- you stop. It felt so incredible."
-
- "Try it yourself. Place your left hand on your left knee and
- your right hand on your left elbow, Carla. Go ahead. You'll be
- pleasantly surprised," he coached her. Carla did this and again
- got a look of amazement on her face. "If you want to try some-
- thing else, let me know when you are ready," he offered.
-
- She indicated that she was ready so Jim explained that she
- should shake her left knee and left elbow. "Ohhhhhhhhhhhhhh. Oh
- my lord. I never felt anything like this before," suddenly she
- stopped. "I can't hurt myself doing this, can I Jim?"
-
- Jim assured her that there was not any actual electricity
- other than that which the mind provided. She returned to her ef-
- forts and Jim watched; becoming more excited as he watched her
- breasts jumping with delight. More and more she shook herself.
- She had a determined look on her face and was trying feverishly
- to climax. "Why can't I get off. I've never felt this good
- before, but I can't seem to get off," she said through clenched
- teeth.
-
- Jim explained that the only way she could come now was to
- remove the remainder of her clothing and dance. She argued with
- him and told him that she was almost there as she continued to
- shake her knee and elbow. Suddenly she jumped up, removed her
- clothes and started to dance wildly. This was the first time that
- Jim had the occasion to see her lovely buttocks. As she danced in
- one direction, her breasts and buttocks went in four separate and
- quite distinct directions. The lovely muff of pubic hair began to
- come to life after being matted down by her garments.
-
- It wasn't long before Jim noticed a strange look come over
- her face. She danced over to the wall, held on to it and con-
- tinued to dance. From the look on her face, it was apparent that
- her climax was beginning. "Lean on the wall and pinch your
- nipples, Carla," Jim urged her. As she did this she let out a
- scream that seemed to shake the room. She fell in jerking motions
- to the floor, and Jim hurried to make sure that she did not get
- hurt on the way down.
-
- He gently helped her the last few inches to the ground, and
- she continued to spasm in his arms; moaning and repeating, "Fuck,
- fuck, fuck, myyyy fucking tits are going to explode; my cuuuunt
- is a river on fire." She continued to jerk with her hot flesh
- pressed against Jim. He wanted in the worst way to bury his
- rock-hard cock into her cunt; the hairy, hot hole that was
- visibly leaking down both of her legs and the cheeks of her ass.
- Jim held her gently as she tried to recover, stoking her hair and
- whispering assurances to her.
-
- Soon Carla began cooing. She told Jim that she hadn't remem-
- bered anything that exciting in a long time. Suddenly they heard
- the door close and Tom said, "where is everyone at?"
-
- "In the living room honey," Carla reached for an afghan to
- cover herself. "Jim has done a few experiments that I can't wait
- to tell you about."
-
- "You don't have to, honey. I was on the porch and saw most
- of everything that happened. I hope you don't mind, Jim. One of
- my weaknesses is voyeurism. I got off without touching myself.
- That was hot. You're the only one that still has a woody, Jim,"
- Tom explained. They all laughed. Carla made something for them to
- eat while Jim continued to explain some of the benefits of hyp-
- nosis as a tool in sex. After a lovely snack, they returned to
- the living room to finish their discussion.
-
- "This talk has served to make me very horny again, guys.
- What to you say we retire to more comfortable digs so you men can
- teach me a few things," Carla offered. Both men got up without
- saying a word and began to follow Carla to the bedroom.
-
- Carla didn't waste any time getting the bed ready for the
- threesome. Jim became increasingly horny as he watched her dance
- about the room getting pillows and placing a tape in the VCR.
- "Well are you guys going to just stand there, or are you going to
- take those things off and join me," she said as she plopped down
- on the bed and struck an inviting pose.
-
- Both men began taking their clothes off. Carla began to rub
- her legs together as she compared their heavy cocks. Jim was
- finished undressing first. He was likely more anxious as Tom had
- already dropped a load of thick cream in his jeans while on the
- porch. Before Jim was completely in the bed, Carla had reached
- out and started to guide his growing penis into her mouth. Tom
- soon joined them and ran his hands up her open thighs as he
- watched her lips engulf Jim's raging cock bone. Tom began licking
- her soft, long legs at the knee, and Jim could feel the vibration
- of her throat on his cock as she moaned at the pleasure Tom was
- offering.
-
- Tom's hot mouth traveled further up her legs and soon her
- wiggling buttocks were resting in his hands; painting them with
- her juices. Tom's tongue found its ultimate mark as it dipped be-
- tween the hairy lips of her cunt hole and began flicking at her
- clit. The excitement drove Carla wild, and she jammed Jim's stiff
- rod deep into her throat, licking his balls and moaning even
- louder. Her lips began a lovely torture on the growing length of
- Jim's engorged shaft. Each time he buried his fuck tool into the
- depths of her mouth, she reached out with her tongue and licked
- his heavy, swollen balls.
-
- Carla removed his raging bone so that she could turn him
- over on his back. Tom got up from the bed to allow her to get
- into position to return Jim's glistening bone to her mouth. She
- was on her hands and knees sucking on Jim's rock-hard bone, and
- her heavy pink tits bounced off of his thighs. Tom was now very
- hard and approached Carla from behind. He lubricated her bushy
- pussy a little more before he placed the head of his fuck snake
- against the lips of her dripping cunt. Tom easily slid the length
- of his tool into the depths of her fragrant hole as he filled his
- hands with the flesh of her ass.
-
- Carla's moans continued to increase in volume as well as
- duration. As Tom's cock drove deeper and deeper, Carla attempted
- to take Jim's cock deeper with each thrust. Jim filled his hands
- with her beautiful swaying tits and began tweaking the pink
- marbles that rested on them. Carla responded by reaching up and
- pinching Jim's own sensitive nipples. This was more than he could
- take. To stop himself from coming prematurely, he removed his
- penis from her mouth and stood up next to the bed. "I don't want
- to get off yet. It's too early. Just let me watch Tom poke your
- lovely whiskers while your gorgeous breasts sway," Jim pleaded.
-
- Jim took a position in a chair next to the bed with one leg
- thrown over the arm of the chair and slowly stroked his long
- cock. Periodically he would have to remove his hand to delay the
- inevitable. Soon Tom got a look of building tension on his face
- and announced that he couldn't hold on any longer. He was going
- to come. Tom reached up, filled his hands with breast flesh and
- drove his dick deep into Carla's cunt hole. He began jerking
- wildly as his cream filled her guts. Suddenly, Tom collapsed on
- the bed next to Carla and left her on all fours. She looked like
- a motor not connected up to the machine she was intended for.
- With a look of pleading in her eyes she said, "I don't know what
- it is Jim, but I just can't seem to come. Please come over here
- and stick your bone in my hole and help me get off. I need more
- cock, and I need it now."
-
- Jim didn't need much encouragement. He approached the bed,
- slid his hand under her breasts to feel their weight, down her
- back, over her still-pumping buttocks and down into the wet,
- hairy crack of her ass and slipped two finger into her moving
- cunt. She groaned with pleasure as she anticipated the entry of
- his swollen rod. Jim knelt on the bed behind her and lower his
- nose to the cleft of her ass cheeks. He was intoxicated from the
- aroma that filled his senses, and his cock grew even more than he
- thought possible. Putting the globes of her ass into his hands,
- he placed his cock into the wedge of her womanhood and drove his
- cock into her hungry pussy. Immediately he began stroking his
- pole into the depths of her greasy cunt as he bunched up her but-
- tocks and watched his penetration.
-
- Tom moved around in front of Carla and offered his swollen
- meat to her panting mouth. She took it into her mouth and reached
- up to massage his harry, heavy balls. Jim watched her head as it
- drove like a piston on her husband's tool. Jim could feel the
- tightening in his loins that always preceded his climax. He
- squeezed his buttocks together to gain deeper penetration and let
- his load pour into Carla's sucking cunt hole. His spasms con-
- tinued as Carla continued to suck on Tom's bone. When he had
- drained every last drop of fluid from his balls, he left his
- relaxing penis in her hole as she continued to pump. Soon Jim's
- meat had lost its length and fell out of her gaping love tunnel.
- He heard a sigh of frustration. "Will I never be able to come?"
- she sighed.
-
- Jim instructed her to lie on her back and open her legs.
- Then he told Tom to get in the saddle and drive his bone in Carla
- as deep as he could. He sat on the edge of the bed and grabbed
- her left breast as Tom continued his efforts. Jim lifted her
- breast, kissed her nipple and pushed on it with his index finger
- as if it were a button. Carla got a look on her face that was so
- passionate that it temporarily frightened Tom.
-
- Immediately, Carla's cunt began to tighten and squeezed
- Tom's thick cock. "Holy christ...... I'm coming! Oh.. Fuck my wet
- hole, mother fucker! Fuck it hard.... Harder... Squeeze me
- cheeks, honey... Squeeze them hard," she said in a jerking voice.
- Her eyes rolled up in her head, and she began grunting in unison
- with Tom's moans. They pumped together, coming, and coming, and
- it seemed like it would never end. Suddenly she reached out and
- grabbed Jim's cock, slammed it into her mouth, reached behind him
- to squeeze his ass and shoved her index finger into his rubbery
- anus. Jim began to come again. She drank from Jim's pumping cock
- as Tom drained the last of himself into her spasming pussy lips.
-
- The three new friends collapsed into a near coma. After a
- what seemed like a very long time Carla roused herself and asked
- if anyone would like a shower. Slowly, as if awoken from hiberna-
- tion, Jim and Tom followed Carla into the shower where they made
- sure that every inch of her body was cleansed and dried. The eve-
- ning ended with a night cap and a promise from Carla that she
- would develop a new fantasy for the next time they met.
-
-
- CHAPTER EIGHT - MIND SEX
-
- Peggy had to go to Seattle to visit her sister Carol. It was
- quite natural for me to go to one of the local watering holes
- after I dropped her off at the airport. I walked in and offered
- my amenities to some of the patrons and took a seat. I ordered my
- usual drink and lit a cigarette.
-
- After only a few moments, the bartender came over and told me
- that I had a drink coming on the couple in the second booth. I
- looked up and saw Cindy, a masseuse that both Peggy and I had
- visited several times over the past few years. She shared my
- interest in hypnosis, and often used relaxation techniques in her
- massage therapy. Cindy looked wonderful. It seemed odd to see her
- out of "uniform." She generally wore sweats when she worked. That
- outfit served to hide the obvious charms that she possessed. She
- was wearing a low cut electric blue fitted dress that hugged
- every lovely curve and accented her bosom, tiny waist and hips.
- Her lovely cleavage separated her stiffened nipples which pressed
- against the thin material of her dress. I walked over to her and
- thanked her for the drink. Cindy introduced me to a pleasant but
- most assuredly intoxicated Gary, her husband.
-
- They asked me to join them, and soon I was comfortably situated
- in the seat next to Cindy, across from Gary. Her warm thigh
- intermittently swayed into my own as she talked about Gary just
- having been promoted to district sales manager of his firm. They
- had been out celebrating. I had difficulty keeping my eyes off of
- her swaying breasts and pointed nipples.
-
- As Cindy's thigh continued its halfhearted assault on my leg in
- tune with the music, I began thinking about the several times I
- had visited her at her health club. She was always exciting but
- never anything but professional. I could remember wanting her not
- to be professional, but none-the-less she had been. I would have
- been crazy not to want her. She was about 5'8" tall, dusty blond,
- heavy breasted with a tight waistline and lovely fanny that
- hinted of moving under her loose-fitting sweats like a symphony.
-
- As Gary continued to drink, I could feel her warmth touching
- me. Soon Cindy suggested that it was time to go. With great
- difficulty, Gary fumbled through his wallet and offered the
- server his plastic money. Upon rising to exit, Gary began to
- waiver and Cindy caught him with my help. I felt the weight of
- her right breast as I reached around Gary to hold him aloft. The
- flesh of her lush tit rose from the shelf of her bra to bulge
- freely into my sight. She looked at me and asked for my
- assistance getting Gary to the car. Once Gary was positioned in
- the front seat of the car, Cindy brushed by me and offered her
- full lips in gratitude for my assistance. The next move was mine.
- I asked if I could follow her home as Gary was beyond repair, and
- she would have a difficult time putting him to bed. She accepted
- my offer and we were off to their home.
-
- I hadn't done that much work in recent memory. Gary was no
- small guy, and dead weight is hard to move. After what seemed
- like a very long time he was settled neatly in bed in the arms of
- Morpheus. Cindy and I returned to the comfort of her den and
- laughed at the memory the three of us had created. Her offer of a
- nightcap was graciously accepted before she put some music on the
- C.D. player and excused herself from the room. She soon returned
- to her own drink wearing a cute but tight-fitting pair of
- pajamas. They were a pink, thin cotton outfit with a trap door
- arrangement that left nothing to the imagination. Her heavy
- breasts were well outlined, and as the cotton moved over her
- lovely breasts, generous nipples began to perk up.
-
- And there I sat wondering whether she was aware just how crazy
- she was driving me as she sat down next to me on the couch. I
- took a long draw on my tall drink and rolled my eyes casually. As
- our glance met she asked me what was the matter. I told her that
- she was absolutely lovely in that outfit. Her response was that I
- was just being kind. I began to tell her that I was never kind
- when it came to lovely women, but I never got the words out. She
- pressed herself against me and her lips found mine. I felt the
- blood begin to rush into my growing cock.
-
- She quickly moved away and I started to apologize for being too
- forward. I didn't get those words out either. She interrupted me
- by saying, "you don't mind if we get just a little kinky do you,
- Jim ?" She walked over to the video tape camera which rested on a
- tripod and turned the system on. My image, sitting on the couch,
- soon began to appear on the large screen television. She panned
- the camera and the room appear to move. The camera came to rest
- on the fireplace at the far end of the room. She zoomed the lens
- of the camera so that only the fireplace filled the screen. "Have
- you ever watched a woman masturbate, Jim? If you don't mind I'm
- going to tape this episode so we can watch it later. Just sit
- back and relax."
-
- I watched Cindy walk toward the fireplace. "Don't watch me,
- Jim. Watch the screen. You won't miss anything," she said as she
- continued her trip to the far end of the room. As she appeared in
- front of the screen, she began to roll her shoulders forcing her
- heavy breast to dance gently for the camera. She grabbed her tits
- and pushed them together letting them fall and bounce. Her hips
- were thrown wide, providing a shelf for her hands and her fanny
- was pushed back. Slowly her hands disappeared behind her ribs and
- gently slid down her back coming to rest on her fanny.
-
- I could see that she was unbuttoning the trap door to her
- pajamas. Soon she began to turn to expose her firm buttocks to
- the screen and my view. The cleft between her ass cheeks was deep
- and dark f rom this distance. I couldn't see the bottom of her
- ass cheeks or her pubic garden, but my imagination started to run
- wild. My cock was straining inside of its trouser prison. "You
- can start taking t hose things off any time you like, Jim. Your
- poor cock will choke to death if you don't let it breath. Do you
- like what you see so far?" she asked with a husky voice.
-
- I began to remove my trousers and responded, "I love it, Cindy.
- You're right. If I don't get these things off soon, my cock will
- explode. Please continue. Your ass is absolutely beautiful."
-
- Cindy crossed her arms in front of herself, grabbed the waist
- band of her top and lifted the pajamas top from her body. As she
- pulled the top over her head, her ample breasts danced for the
- camera. Next her thumbs were hooked inside of her bottoms and
- they were pealed from her ribbed belly, her pubic mound, her
- muscular thighs and off her feet. She turned a forty-five degree
- angle from the cam era as she bent over to pull the elastic band
- anklets free. I could see her breasts dip to inverted mountains
- of flesh. Her hips and profile of her buttocks was driving me
- wild. I began to stroke my fuck pole as she assumed an indian
- style sitting position. She had a wonderful full crop of curly
- pubic hair. It began low on her shapely belly and promised a
- great texture as it disappeared between the darkness of her long
- thighs.
-
- Her chest bent forward, her eyes closed and she cupped her
- dangling tits. Thumbs and forefingers started to gently twist her
- growing dark brown nipples. A moan escaped her slightly parted
- lips as s he continued to roll these dark rubbery marbles. "Oh
- fuck, Jim. My nipples are so hard thinking about your lips and
- teeth on them. I can almost feel you pulling on them and sucking
- them like a hungry baby. I can feel your hands lifting my heavy
- tits and squeezing them tightly. Do you like the way they wiggle
- and bounce when I move? How about this. Do you like the way they
- look when I lean back a nd they spread over my chest?" she asked
- with a seductive voice.
-
- "I can almost taste your thick brown nipples between my teeth.
- I had no idea that this could be so exciting. My cock is so hard.
- Your heavy tit sacks look wonderful regardless of what position
- their in. My imagination is running wild now. I can imagine them
- hanging heavily as you are on your knees offering me your ass. I
- love to fuck dog style and reach under you and hold your lovely
- breasts. It also gives me access to your hard clit. Would you
- like me to fuck you on your knees while I play with your tits and
- rub your clit?" I asked as I watched her hands travel over her
- stomach and head toward the dark patch of pubic hair.
-
- "Oh fuck. I can see your cock bone sliding in and out of my
- split hairy pussy. When you pull it out, it is all covered with
- my creamy juices. When you push it back in, it pulls some of my
- cunt hair in with it and increases the friction of our fuck. When
- its driven deep, our pubic hair mix together," she continued her
- verbal love making.
-
- I was stroking my cock meat as I watched her enter her cunt
- hole with her fingers. She leaned back on her haunches, and her
- tits were swaying back and forth. One hand reached up to feel the
- weight of her thick tit. She removed her fingers from her leaking
- pussy, looked up at me and put her fingers in her mouth, sucking
- and licking the honey from them. Slowly she reached behind her to
- a box resting on the lip of the fireplace. She reached inside the
- box and removed a large flesh colored dildo. It was almost eight
- inches in length and had heavy balls attached to it. At the
- bottom was a switch. She placed it into her mouth to add
- lubricant to it as well as to excite me. The surrogate cock was
- lowered and placed at the entrance to her greasy hairy pussy. She
- closed her eyes, threw her he ad back and put the first couple of
- inches into her slippery box. The sight was driving me crazy.
- Deeper and deeper it went until she was completely impaled on
- its length. She sat on it fully and rocked back and forth as she
- pinched frantically at her thick rubbery nipples. "Oh fuck, baby.
- This is good. The vibrations are driving me insane. Now I'm going
- to turn it on high speed, Jim. Imagine that it's your strong bone
- in my tight slippery cunt hole. Wouldn't you love to pinch my
- fucking hard nipples? Wouldn't you love to suck my big tits and
- squeeze my ass cheeks? Well, you're going to mother fucker. Go
- ahead and stroke that bone, cunt lapper. You're soon going to
- pour all of that hot sticky fuck cream on my tits, my ass and in
- my fucking guts. I want gallons of that hot fuck juice in my
- mouth," Cindy spoke in well-defined words in an effort to
- increase my excitement.
-
- Her hands continued to manipulate her exquisite breasts, and
- soon her eyes shot wide open and then rolled up in her head. She
- looked lovely as she began her climb to ecstasy. "Oh, mother
- fucker, I'm cuming! Oh shit, this fuck'n rod in my pussy feels
- wonderful. Soon your thick cock will be buried in my furry hole.
- I want to suck that bone, and I want you to stick your tongue in
- my honey pot, honey. Get over here," she demanded.
-
- I didn't require any further direction. I rose and approached
- her with my rod bouncing up and down in time with my steps. My
- hot nuts were tight against my body because their swelling
- increased by the hot scene unfolding in front of me. I reached
- down and pulled her to her feet. She extracted the still
- vibrating dildo, and turned it off with one short movement,
- discarding it on the floor. My lips quickly found hers and her
- hot tongue entered my sucking mouth. I could feel her moist mound
- come in contact with my thigh as my stiff fuckstick stabbed into
- her belly. A moan escaped her hungry lips and traveled into the
- depths of my lungs. Cindy's resilient breast globes pressed their
- erect nipples into the hair of my chest. My trembling hands
- reached behind her to treat themselves to the rippling mounds of
- ass cheeks.
-
- My thick cock continued to grow and deposit small trails of
- silvery fluid on her well-shaped stomach muscles. Suddenly she
- reached between us and began to pinch and twist both of my stiff
- nipples. My fingers could feel her perspiration begin to travel
- down the smooth crack of her ass. The smell of her hot sex rose
- to invade my nose, increasing my excitement. Maintaining a firm
- grip on her strong buttocks, I reached up to feel the weight of
- her heavy breast as it teased by chest. My fingers then traveled
- down to the forest of thick cunt hair to find her oily, pouting
- pussy lips spread with excitement. I gathered her hot emissions
- and began to smear them between her legs and over her finely
- textured fanny.
-
- "I need you to eat my cunt, Jim. Will you put your lips on my
- hot pussy and drive your tongue inside of my fuck hole?" she
- asked between pants.
-
- "Lay down, sweetheart. Let me taste your honey pot. I can't
- wait to smell your sex. I need to drink your cum," I said as I
- slowly lowered her to the carpeting in front of the fireplace.
- Placing my hands behind her strong thighs, I gently spread her
- legs to reveal her glorious, hair-shrouded vulva. A pink, flower
- appeared in front of my hungry eyes. She had such a beautiful,
- wet pussy. I smelled the fragrance of her heat and began to
- breath heavily onto her hairy cunt hole. She began to moan and
- lift her hips to expedite her joy. I continued to tease her
- leaking hole with my hot breath and intermittently dip the tip of
- my tongue into her body.
-
- She jammed my cock bone into her mouth in one fell swoop. As I
- felt the tip of my love tool lodge in her moaning throat, I was
- compelled to shove my tongue deep into her hole and completely
- cover t he lips of her pussy with my lips. We were locked in an
- embrace, our mouths filled with one another's genitals. She
- rocked her hips in and out against my mouth, and I continued to
- drive my fucker between her sucking lips. Suddenly I stopped. I
- didn't want it to end this quickly. I would have spilled my seed
- into her sucking mouth if I pumped once more.
-
- "I don't want to blow yet, Cindy. Just let me look at you for a
- minute," I said as I rolled over and filled my eyes with her
- lovely, aroused flesh. She grasped her breasts, lifted them to my
- gaze a nd began to roll the nipples with her fingers. She had the
- look of a hungry animal on her face. She smiled and stood in
- front of me. Her hands continued to travel her body from her
- heavy breasts to her rounded ass cheeks as she turned around for
- me. I didn't dare touch my raging cock for fear that it would go
- off.
-
- "I think you need a drink, Jim. I'll be right back," she
- whispered as her legs stretched into a slow gait toward the bar.
- The fire painted each lovely curve during her short journey. As
- her hot body moved the shadows of the flame from the fireplace
- danced and frolicked across her taunt skin. She returned to my
- side and offered me another glass of cool wine. "You can take a
- short break and then you're in for trouble, mother fucker. Do you
- like it when I call you mother fucker? Do you like it when I talk
- to you about fucking and sucking?" she asked as her body lowered
- itself into its seated position. I loved the way her breast sacks
- swayed as she negotiated her wine glass and sat down.
-
- "It drives me wild her hear your hot words. Each time you utter
- a sound to me, I turn to fucking butter and I think about your
- butter pouring out all over my cock bone," I teased back.
-
- "Well then finish that wine, cunt-lapper. I don't care if you
- cum quickly. The next time you'll last even longer; and there
- will be a next time. I'm not going to let you out of here until
- I'm done," she threatened in mock fashion.
-
- The wine was soon gone, and I found her lips wrapped around my
- torpedo once again. I filled my hands with the cheeks of her ass
- and began to lather her up to drive my pole to her depths. She
- grasped my stretched penis roughly and ran her teeth slowly and
- softly over its purple head. My tongue dipped between the well
- defined gully between her pubic hair patch. The texture of her
- cunt hair felt good on my slowly moving tongue, and the smell of
- her womanhood was intoxicating. I pushed it into the pink
- crevice, gathered up her thick juices and deposited them on the
- lips of her swollen vulva. "I can't take it any longer, Jim. You
- have to stick your fuck stick into my cunt hole, now," she cried.
- "Fuck me, you wonderful cunt lapper. Bury your pole in my slimy,
- hairy cunt." I rolled onto my back and pulled her toward me. She
- had a hungry look on her face and didn't take her eyes off my
- bone. I watched as her ample breasts sway as she moved herself
- into position over my thick penis. My
- eyes traveled to the point of imminent contact, and I saw her
- pink quim peak out of the wet hair that surrounded it. She
- grabbed the head of my tool and placed it neatly between the
- swollen lips of her pussy. I could feel the slippery skin of her
- twat painting the helmet of my bone. She rubbed it between her
- legs to prepare it for penetration. All the while her lovely tits
- continued to dance for me. Her nipples were like sharp, angry
- darts seeking a target. My hands reached up, lifted their weight,
- squeezed and kneaded the flesh and allowed them to fall again to
- bounce and jiggle.
-
- Quickly, my cock bone was buried to its limit. She grunted
- furiously and began to fuck her hips back and forth over my
- hidden hammer. The texture of the skin of her hips was beautiful
- as she continued to ride my monster. My hands moved back and
- forth between her magnificent mammaries to her strong buttocks.
- Each time my hands fell into the crack of her ass where it met
- her honey pot, they became soaked with her love cream. I smeared
- it over the cheeks of her ass and on her swollen nipples. The
- sensation of my slippery hands, greased with her fluids, gliding
- over her stiff nipples was to much for her to take.
-
- Cindy let out a muffled squeal and became as rigid as a board.
- Her eyes widened, as if in fear, and her mouth remained open in a
- soundless scream. Her rocking continued as the muscles of her
- love sleeve gripped the meat of my driving cock. Her words came
- in a jerking fashion, "fuck.... me.... fuck the.... shit out
- of.... me, mother.... fucker. Suck on my tits. I accommodated her
- every demand, with glee, as well as I could. I couldn't take my
- eyes from her passion-ridden face. Her teeth were clenched as she
- continued, "drive that cock in me. I want it all. I want your
- cum. Shoot your hot load."
-
- That's all I needed to cause my explosion. I could feel the cum
- begin its journey from the depths of my hairy balls as my eyes
- returned to her heaving tits. My nuts tightened, my cock became
- as rigid as it had ever been, and my cream started to travel up
- the shaft of my hose. "Ride it, you lovely bitch. Ride my cock
- while I squeeze your beautiful ass cheeks. Pour your cream in my
- lap and feel my dick in your greasy pussy," I said as my eyes
- involuntarily rolled back in my head. My buttocks tightened as I
- drove my bone one last time into her wet heaven. I could feel the
- cum shooting into her guts and further lubricating my shaft. She
- continued to ride as if my bone would never go away. The overflow
- of my juice began to spill from her tensing pussy and collect on
- my burning balls. This was some remarkable woman. I could only
- wonder why I had never pursued this lovely creature before. She
- had collapsed on me, and we rolled over so that she remained
- cradled in my arms with her face buried in my chest.
-
- After a short period, she stirred and asked, "are you ready for
- round two, stud-puppy? She began to rub her breasts against my
- belly and grind her wet box against my leg. "We can get ourselves
- worked up again by watching our little movie, if you would like."
-
- I had never seen myself fuck before. I thought it would be
- great to see that. "Be my guest," I said as I waved with one hand
- in the direction of the video player. She got up slowly and
- sensuously moved toward the video equipment. She put the system
- on rewind, recovered the remote control and went to the bar to
- get us another drink. As we sat there sipping and cuddling, she
- put pushed the play button on the remote, and we settled in to
- see this new epic.
-
- I couldn't believe how vivid the display was. Here I was
- sitting with this lovely woman, watching her masturbate for me.
- Soon my cock began to stir and grow to its previous heights. I
- played with her tits and her ass flesh while I watched the T.V.
- screen.
-
- Her long fingernails reached for my nipples and started to
- tease them. My hand was resting in the moist crack of her ass,
- squeezing the flesh of her buttocks. "I love the look on your
- face as the dildo is moving in and out of your hairy pussy,
- Cindy," I whispered in her ear as her cream continued to fill my
- hand.
-
- "And I love the way your cock grows when you watch me on the
- screen. Your cock feels to good in my hand. Watch how it
- continues to get harder as we talk about it. See how the head is
- becoming more smooth and deeper in color. Let me polish it for
- you a little bit, Jim," she said as she turned to place it in her
- mouth. My fingers dipped deeper inside of her hairy, wet honey
- pot as her lips glided over the head of my stiff organ. Then she
- pulled it out and began rubbing it over her rubbery nipples.
-
- To my utter surprise and infinite joy, I suddenly felt the
- vibrator slip into her slippery pussy beside my probing fingers.
- She drove it in deep as her lips returned to my raging penis. We
- twisted into a "69" position and my nose was soon offered the
- fragrance of her twat. My eyes watched the dildo searching her
- depths along side my fingers. In and out it went. Up and down the
- moist crack it t raveled, teasing the swollen clit. Suddenly, she
- withdrew the intruding vibrator, turned it off and bore down on
- my thrusting hand and twisting fingers.
-
- My mouth went to her dark pink clit and my tongue started to
- provide stimulation. Her lips were traveling up and down the
- length of my expanded member, and all of a sudden, I felt
- something pressing on my anal passage. The pressure continued to
- increase, and I could feel something entering my ass hole. Then
- it dawned on he what it was when she turned it on again. It was
- the vibrator. It rattled my buns and relaxed my rear passage as
- it continued to travel inward. The sensation was unbelievable as
- she twisted it to rub its base against my hairy balls as it
- invaded my bung hole. I could feel my thick penis continue to
- grow in her sucking mouth. "How do you like it, mother fucker?"
- she asked as she continued her gentle assault on my ass.
-
- My answer was wordless but definite. I began to rock my hips
- back and forth serving to both bury my cock further into her
- mouth and drive the plastic cock up my ass. Her tool became more
- lubricated as the time progressed, and she began to twist it
- while she drove it deeper and deeper. Soon, her toy was buried
- deeply in my ass, and she turned the vibration up to a heavy hum.
- My fucking rod, as if with a mind of its own, began a slow, long
- vibration, consisting of one long spurt after another. I was
- coming in a fashion that I was unfamiliar with. It seemed to come
- from my toes and rock my b rain. My cum ridden balls were slowly
- pumping gobs of thick cream into her sucking mouth. It was as if
- I had no control over it or nothing to say about it.
-
- As my vibrations continued, I filled my hands with slippery ass
- cheeks and drove my tongue deep within her gushing pussy. The
- aroma was wonderful. The scent of her hairy cunt hole filled my
- senses, and everything seemed to be happening in slow motion. She
- continued her efforts long after her own climax shook her body
- within my clutching hands; long after she drank all of my sticky
- juice. I was soaking wet with perspiration. Her heavy breasts
- slid back and forth over my hairy belly as she settled in to
- relax against my spent body.
-
- With a husky voice she asked, "How was that for a little
- variety, honey? Have you ever had a vibrator between these tight
- buns?"
-
- I spoke with difficulty, "I don't think I have ever had a
- feeling quite like that. It was great. I came longer than I ever
- did. The smell of your sweet pussy, the feel of your ass meat in
- my hands, and the feel of my cock lodged deep in your throat
- drove my over the edge. You are fucking unbelievable, Cindy."
-
- "Well, it wasn't bad for round one. There are a couple of ways
- to look at it," she said as rested her head on my thigh. "If this
- turns out to be a boxing match, we will have eleven or fourteen
- rounds to go, depending on which league you follow. If we relate
- it to pussy, I still have eight lives. But I would much rather
- think of it in terms of the encyclopedia, and tonight we only
- touched on the 'As.' Let's hope that Gary gets promoted early and
- often."
-
- "Now wake up feeling wonderful and remember everything, Jim,"
- Peggy said as she brought me out of my trance.
-
- Turn about is fair play, I thought as I shook my head in
- understanding.
-
-
- CHAPTER NINE - MIND SEX
-
- It had been a lousy week for Peggy. Faced with the prospect
- of closing her boutique due to falling sales and not having found
- a job as yet, she was depressed. Her children, away at college
- seemed to be unusually demanding, and it seemed that she couldn't
- get anything accomplished. She was convinced that she needed some
- diversion. It didn't take long for her to realize that the only
- thing that ever made the ugly world go away was the gut wrenching
- orgasms that she had from time to time. Fast and furious fucking
- would likely be her only salvation from the confusion that she
- was currently feeling.
-
- Although she had better and more frequent climaxes when they
- used hypnosis, she sometimes became concerned that Jim loved fan-
- tasy more than he did her. She preferred normal, fantasy-free
- sex with Jim, but she knew that fantasy sex was his biggest
- turn-on. He was obsessed with the thought of another man putting
- his hands on her smooth breasts. His cock stayed as stiff as a
- board each time he thought about another man sucking on her per-
- fect pink nipples.
-
- Her mind wandered at the sexy thoughts that began to invade
- her mind. She thought about the many conversations that she and
- Jim had over the years. He always assured her that she was excit-
- ing and that it was a matter of pride. He wanted every man to
- want her; to see her naked, exciting body; to taste her fragrant
- honey pot; to hold her round, smooth buttocks in their hands. He
- almost came each time he thought of another man's long, thick
- cock bone pounding inside of her twisting belly. That did it. She
- would hint to Jim that tonight should be a fantasy night. Tonight
- she needed to escape with Jim into her deepest fantasies.
-
- Peggy called Jim at work and asked if he would be able to
- come home early tonight. He responded by saying that he would try
- to be home early and questioned her as to whether anything was
- wrong or if she needed anything. "Just you Jim. Ya know, I think
- tonight might be the night for us to escape into a wonderful fan-
- tasy. Do you think you might be interested?" she inquired.
-
- "Did you have anything particular in mind, honey?" Jim asked
- as his mind and body began to react to the thought.
-
- "I think that tonight I need to be a fucking slut. I need to
- meet an absolute stranger... Richard Gear... Ya, Richard Gear
- should fuck my brains out tonight. I need to have his hands on
- me. I want him to such my big tits and make me come all over his
- face. He can bring as many friends as he would like," she of-
- fered, knowing that she was driving Jim wild with anticipation.
-
- "I'll be home very early, honey. We can have a little light
- dinner and dip into our minds as well as our bodies. Start to im-
- agine thick, long cocks surrounding you, touching your skin, in-
- vading your hot mouth and your dark hairy cunt hole," Jim began
- to tease as his bone began to leave traces of his excitement in
- his pants.
-
- Now it was Jim's turn to think of all of the wonderful pos-
- sibilities that lay ahead. Although he had experienced a few af-
- fairs over the years, never had he found any woman that could ex-
- cite him as much as Peggy could. Her body was perfect for him. He
- had made love with women that had larger breasts, but Peggy's
- were perfect. They looked perfect, felt perfect and tasted per-
- fect. It may have been her reaction to Jim's attention to her
- breasts. He wasn't sure. He only knew that her tits exciting him
- more than any others.
-
- He had probed the depths of other women's love tunnels, but
- never did his cock get harder than with Peggy. It could have been
- the well-defined lines of her lovely pubic patch. Maybe it was
- the appearance of her fat cunt lips as they became excited and
- full of anticipation. It could have been the taste of her sweet
- pussy nectar. Again, he wasn't sure. He only knew that she was
- the best. Peggy loved to climax, and just the look on her face
- when she got off drove Jim wild.
-
- Peggy was blessed with the most lovely set of buttocks. Her
- small but fleshy buns wiggled so nicely when she walked. It drove
- him wild to fill his hands with ass flesh when he drove his cock
- bone deep into her gyrating cunt. She loved to feel his strong
- hands squeeze hard as they fucked fast and furious.
-
- Jim's cock was so hard thinking about Peggy's lovely body
- and about the prospect of her fucking someone else for him that
- his hard cock almost went off in his pants. He had a raging
- hard-on. He tried to hide it as he walked out to his secretary's
- desk to drop off a letter to be typed. He must not have been suc-
- cessful because her eyes seems to be riveted to his crotch. She
- looked away, raised her eye brows slightly and smiled. It must
- have been obvious to her that Jim's mind wasn't currently on
- work. "I'll be leaving a bit early today. Please just take mes-
- sages and make excuses for me," Jim requested.
-
- His secretary suggested with a chuckle as she walked over to
- the copy machine that, "it may be a good idea to relax for a
- little while and get your mind off the job. I'll hold down the
- fort." She put a little extra wiggle in her ass, obviously think-
- ing about what he would be up to.
-
- The garage door opened as Jim pulled into the driveway.
- Having parked the car, he extracted the flowers and candy that he
- had acquired on the way home. He danced up the steps and into the
- house as he announced that he was home. Setting down the candy,
- he began looked for a vase for the flowers. A little water in the
- vase and a slight spay on the blooms offered and pleasant picture
- of the arrangement. Jim set down the vase on the dinning room
- table and noticed that it was set for two. There was a pleasant
- aroma as he passed through the kitchen. He reached for the oven
- door and heard Peggy coming down the hall from the bedroom. "Hey,
- get out of the oven before you ruin our dinner," she said with a
- chuckle.
-
- Jim looked up to see one of the most lovely sights he could
- remember. Peggy was standing there with an extremely low-cut yel-
- low blouse, a tight, light green skirt, lace hose and high heels.
- Her breasts were accented so well and her cleavage seemed to
- beckon to him. The high heels promoted her lovely buttocks in
- such a way as to make Jim want to touch them immediately. What
- great legs, he thought. "First, you are going to go get out of
- that suit, put something more comfortable on and I'll make you a
- cocktail. Dinner will be ready soon and we can get down to
- business," Peggy directed him as she swayed toward the cabinet
- where the liquor was kept. Jim smiled, walked up behind her,
- filled his hands with her breasts and placed his cock against her
- well shaped ass.
-
- "Yes young lady; whatever you say," he teased as he headed
- for the bedroom. Soon he reappeared and found his drink waiting
- for him. Peggy sauntered over to the table with a glass of white
- wine in her hand. She seemed to glide, and she knew that she was
- beginning to drive Jim wild. She was proud of her breasts, but
- embarrassed to let anyone else see them. Jim had often prompted
- her to show off a little, but rarely did she ever offer her
- charms to any one else's view.
-
- Soon dinner was ready, set and consumed. Peggy had done a
- wonderful job. She didn't overdo it. There was just enough to
- suppress their hunger and not weigh them down.
-
- "Jim, I know that you would like to see me making love with
- someone else, and I think I understand why. Tonight I would like
- you to hypnotize me, make me a prostitute and watch me get
- fucked. I want to forget about anything and everything all night.
- I just want to come until I pass out. Can we do that?" she asked
- pleadingly.
-
- "It excites me beyond words to hear you say that. You are
- going to get so much cock tonight, you may never want it again,"
- Jim whispered.
-
- "I don't think that's possible, honey. I don't think I can
- ever get enough cock. I want to eat it, suck it, fuck it and rub
- jism all over my aching tits. I want to feel that hot, thick,
- sticky jelly running down the crack of my ass. I want it all,"
- she assured him.
-
- Jim told her to get comfortable in the chair, and he induced
- the trance state in no time at all. "When you awaken, you will
- find yourself in a lounge having a glass of wine. You are a pros-
- titute. You don't fuck simply for money. You do it because you
- are a horny woman that can't seem to get enough cock. You will be
- approached by one or more men and asked to dance. Jim will be in
- the lounge, and he will be able to see everything that goes on.
- You will try your best to excite him by the way you interact with
- whoever you are dancing with. The man who agrees to pay you five
- hundred dollars will look and sound like Richard Gear. You will
- ask him to show you his money. He will show you five one hundred
- dollar monopoly bills and you will see them as real money. You
- will direct him to follow you, knowing that Jim will be able to
- see everything that happens. He will accompany you to your
- bedroom and the rest is up to you. When I snap my fingers once,
- you will awaken and remember everything as if it actually hap-
- pened. Do you understand everything that I have told you?" Jim
- inquired.
-
- "Yes. I understand," Peggy spoke softly. Jim went to the
- game chest and retrieved the monopoly money.
-
- "At the count of three wake up feeling wonderful, sexy and
- extremely horny. One.... Tow.... Three.... Wake up; you are in
- the lounge," Jim instructed.
-
- Jim moved over to the breakfast counter and sat on a stool.
- He looked over at Peggy, and she threw him a seductive glance.
- She crossed her legs in an inviting manner and bounced her foot.
- Soon Jim stood up and walked over to the table. "Would you care
- to dance?" he asked.
-
- Peggy responded as she was getting to her feet displaying
- her cleavage to its best advantage, "I would love to."
-
- The music played softly as Peggy fell into Jim's arms. She
- looked up into his eyes as she pressed her breasts into his
- stomach. Jim had difficulty keeping his eyes off her breasts. He
- could feel her press the mound of her pussy into his leg as she
- seductively swayed with the music.
-
- Peggy's mind was on fire. She knew that Jim was someplace in
- the lounge watching her dance with this man. Suddenly, she felt
- his hand on the swell of her hip. Then it began to travel
- downward and rest on her buttock; smoothing her flesh first and
- then slightly squeezing it. She imagined Jim's cock getting hard
- at the sight. The music soon came to an end and they parted with
- mutual thank yous.
-
- The next soft song came on the radio, and she was approached
- by another man. She accepted his offer to dance and walked with
- him hand in hand. This man started out holding her at a distance.
- She was sure that it was not because he didn't want to touch her,
- but rather because he wanted to get a good look at her lovely
- breasts. He did not take his eyes off her bulging tits. "Do you
- like the way my breasts look?" she asked the stranger.
-
- Jim responded, "you have the most lovely tits I can recall
- seeing. My name is Roger. What is your name?
-
- "Peggy. If you like the way they look, you should feel them
- against your chest," she said as she pressed them into his large
- frame. Again she began pressing her pussy mound into his leg. She
- could feel the warmth develop between her legs as her hot nectar
- began to flow. She felt his cock growing and resting against her
- belly. She was so hot now, and she knew that she was putting on a
- great show for Jim.
-
- "Do you think that we might be able to find a place a little
- quieter so we can get to know one another," asked the man she was
- dancing with.
-
- "I don't mean to disappoint you, Roger, but I am a working
- girl. If you owned a candy story, it wouldn't be good business to
- give it away; now would it."
-
- "You mean you are a prostitute?" he asked incredulously.
-
- "I hope I haven't offended you, but that's what I do for a
- living. And I do it very well. I do it $500.00 well," she said.
-
- "I'm not usually given to paying for pussy, but I really
- have to feel you next to me. I would love to employ you," he said
- with a wicked grin.
-
- "Business first, Roger. Let me see the color of your money,
- and we will make the necessary arrangements.
-
- "Roger" showed Peggy his "money" and she smiled. "Follow me,
- Roger. I think this is going to be a very interesting experience
- for both of us," she said with excitement, knowing that Jim would
- be able to see every move that both of them made.
-
- In what seemed like only moments they were in the bedroom
- undressing one another. Peggy could feel her love nectar begin to
- drip out of her hairy cunt lips and down her leg. Her nipples
- seemed to be on fire. She longed to have a tongue lick them to
- put out the fire. She could almost feel tight lips nibbling on
- her large pink marbles. She saw Roger's huge cock standing at at-
- tention and needed to feel it in her mouth. Peggy laid down on
- the bed and Roger approached the side of the bed pointing the
- direction with his erect penis.
-
- Roger moved on his knees, forward to Peggy's head, his hard
- thrusting cock standing stiffly from his belly, pointing at her
- soft lips. Peggy rested her upper torso weight on one arm, lift-
- ing the other, held his cock aiming it to her mouth, resting the
- head on her pink tipped tongue.
-
- Roger held her face tenderly between his open palms, lifting
- her head slightly, centering his cock at her questing lips,
- slowly slid his cock between her full lips deep into her mouth.
- His cock drove deeper, and Peggy began to breathe through her
- nose as his prick slid over her tongue. Her lips stretched wider
- as his cock moved until his bulbous glans reached the back of her
- throat, then with just a little more pressure, moved into the
- narrow opening and lodged.
-
- Peggy fought down the urge to gag, then swallowed, caressing
- the head of his prick with the muscles of her throat. Quickly
- learning to deep throat the throbbing prick in her mouth, Peggy
- began swallowing and constricting her throat muscles around the
- head of his deeply lodged prick.
-
- Each time Roger withdrew his prick, Peggy would relax, then
- as his cock delved deep into her throat, Peggy would swallow,
- giving his cock intense pleasure.
-
- As Roger turned over and laid on his back, Peggy settled be-
- tween his open thighs. She leaned forward and took his cock be-
- tween her lips, sucking at the knobby head and drawing the full
- length of his prick into her warm wet mouth. Quickly, his prick
- filled with blood, filling her oral cavity until she could no
- longer hold it all inside her mouth and began to kiss the bulbous
- head and run her flickering tongue around the tip. Holding the
- pulsating head of his prick inside her sucking lips, she lapped
- at his hard prick from balls to glans, and her hands were at his
- balls, gently caressing and fondling.
-
- Peggy pulled Roger's prick from her hot lips, looking at it
- closely, noting that the head of his cock was bright red and
- swollen until it glistened both with her saliva and the pounding
- blood filling his organ. She slipped her fingers down to feel his
- balls again, and found them drawn up tight and hard. Knowing that
- he was about to come, Peggy slipped her hot lipped mouth over the
- head again, swirling her tongue over the glans, and driving the
- tip of her tongue into the hole at the end.
-
- Peggy suckled at his pounding, stiff prick, circling the
- base of his root with her lightly clutching fingers as she felt
- the surge of sperm expanding his cock. The sticky jelly spurted
- and rolled from his cock. Peggy pulled her mouth away quickly and
- aimed Roger's spurting organ at her full titties, watching the
- juice spatter and cling on her full trembling globes. As Roger's
- prick spent it's last drop, Peggy rubbed the glistening jism into
- the softness of her tits.
-
- Trailing a wet stream of cum, Peggy put his cock back in her
- mouth and sucked, compressing her lips around the shaft of his
- prick, effectively milking it of any remaining drops of sticky
- sperm, until it pulled free of her still sucking lips with an
- audible noise.
-
- Peggy left the room and returned shortly with wine for her
- and a cocktail for Jim. Even after he had spent his cream, he
- couldn't take his eyes off of Peggy's ass as it rolled when she
- walked. As she set down his drink he watched her breasts sway.
- They kissed deeply after they finished their drinks.
-
- Peggy posed wonderfully on the bed next to "Roger." What a
- vision, he thought. He could feel his rod begin to lengthen once
- again. Rolling over Roger found himself between Peggy's legs. He
- lifted one large tit to his mouth and began to suck gently on her
- nipple. A moan escaped her full lips as his hands began to mas-
- sage her breast meat. As Roger sucked harder on her tight
- pinkish-red nipples, her moans increased. His tongue began to
- trail down between her ample breasts to her soft belly as he
- twirled her nipples between his forefingers and thumbs.
-
- Peggy could feel his nose brush through her pubic hair in
- his effort to avail himself of her fragrance. Electric shocks
- poured through her as she reminder herself that Jim was watching
- this man put his face into her womanhood. Roger's hands had left
- her breasts to fill themselves with her soft, round buttocks. She
- placed her own hands on her titties, cupped them tenderly and
- began teasing her big nipples.
-
- The pink wet flesh glowed and glistened in the subdued
- lighting and the shadowed darkness, and Roger placed his tongue,
- pointed stiffly, into her clit at the top of her wet cunt, nuz-
- zling at her wirey, sticky pubic hairs, and the hot slippery
- opening.
-
- Licking with his tongue, Roger attempted to savor all of the
- rich sticky juices now pouring from Peggy's pussy, moving his
- head until he was able to touch the wet pulpy softness of the
- pussy beneath his tongue. Roger darted forward, his tongue
- slithering over Peggy's curly hair and wet, open slit.
-
- The sensation of Roger's tongue on Peggy's hot clit, brought
- Peggy to orgasm with wild, fast movements. Her body arching from
- the mattress as Roger's tongue laved over her clit. As Peggy con-
- vulsed she grabbed his head and held it tightly to her hole.
- Roger's sharp tongue drove deeply into her honey pit as he
- squeezed her shaking buttocks.
-
- Roger drew himself up and climbed toward Peggy as she lay
- shaking slightly from her recent eruption. As she felt his hard
- manhood approaching her still quivering pussy, she reached out
- for him and came immediately to life. She wrapped her legs up-
- wards around the small of his back, as she felt the head of his
- great shaft approaching her steaming hole. She bucked her hairy
- cunt upwards in a frenzy to receive his cock. Her full tits
- quivering each time Roger's prick drove into her cunt, her body
- wriggling with pleasure at the deep hard thrusts.
-
- She tossed her head backwards. Her hips were moving slightly
- faster, her legs clinging a little tighter to Roger's back. She
- started moving her heels into Roger's flanks, digging and spur-
- ring him on like a horse. Her cunt twisting and convulsing over
- Roger's driving pole deep in her pussy as her tits flopped
- wildly. Roger began to groan, then driving his cock to the hilt
- against her ass, his balls tight between his legs. Peggy again
- began to tighten and displayed an almost frightened look on her
- face. This climax was earth shaking. Jolts of electricity ran
- through her body from her tit to her clit. She began grunting
- like a wild animal as she reached out, filled her hands with his
- buttocks and pulled him yet deeper into her fuck hole.
-
- Suddenly Roger rolled both of them over without removing his
- raging penis. Peggy's full tits were quivering and shaking as she
- slowly slid down on Roger's cock, burying his cock between the
- curly haired lips of her dripping cunt until only his heavy,
- hairy balls were visible. Roger's hands held her full breasts,
- his fingers caressing and fondling her pink swollen nipples as
- his hips drove his cock slowly into the ravishing woman's steam-
- ing wet cunt; her ass working in wild swinging circles as she
- drove her fat lipped pussy up and down the slippery hot cock.
- Twice Roger had to stop her motion to keep from coming prema-
- turely.
-
- He tapped her on her lovely pink ass as if to give her
- direction. Gently he pushed her off of his towering cock and
- asked her if he could have another drink. She consented and made
- another journey for refreshments, swinging her hot bottom for the
- benefit of his hungry eyes. Soon she returned displaying the
- drinks and her lovely breasts. She felt so sexy and knew that
- Roger and Jim would both come like a lion.
-
- Moments after completing his drink Roger regained his com-
- posure and drew Peggy to him. A deep kiss precipitated him
- saying, "get on your knees, honey. I'm going to drive this cock
- bone all the way home."
-
- She got on her knees and exhibited her lovely buttocks to
- his gaze and touch. Roger placed the head of his spear between
- the hairy cunt lips and sunk it deeply into her body. Slowly at
- first his raging dick drove into her hole. The motion soon grew
- quicker, her curvaceous ass becoming a blur as she screwed his
- hard cock. Roger withdrew and pulled his prick upwards over her
- wet-lipped opening, then drove it into her cunt from behind the
- kneeling lusty lady again. His cock sank deeply into her crotch
- until his belly was pressed against her curvaceous ass, his balls
- dangling between her richly curved trembling thighs. Peggy began
- to move with his rhythm, her ass moving back as his prick sank
- into her hairy cunt, quickly establishing a rhythm of lusty need.
- Peggy continued moving to Roger's rhythm as she felt herself near
- another climax. She knew that Jim was watching and must have his
- hand on his own fuck tool.
-
- Roger's throbbing prick jetted, squirting his male cream in
- between the her clinging thighs, filling her cavity with the
- slippery male juice of his sex. A copious quantity of juicy hot
- cum escaped the tight lipped opening to trail down Peggy's cur-
- vaceous thigh, gleaming silver in the subdued lighting of the
- bedroom, clinging to her richly curved leg.
-
- The feeling of hot sperm filling her wet pussy, brought
- Peggy the rest of the way to a shuddering orgasm, her body insa-
- tiable, moving as a blur now bucking her ass back onto Roger's
- spurting prick, driving his hard squirting male organ so deeply
- that his balls were squeezed tightly between her thighs. Peggy
- could feel Roger's cock diminishing in size within her still con-
- vulsing cunt, attempting to hold his cock between the slippery
- hot lips of her cunt as long as possible. As his cock shrunk, it
- pulled free by itself, trailing sperm while slippery pussy
- lubricant slid down Peggy's inner thigh, dripping from the
- ringlets of her soft curly pussy hair; the oily liquid matting
- the curls of her pubic hair, the swollen lipped opening oozing
- the hot wet combined juices of Peggy's sexual passion dripping
- from the opening between her thighs. Her finger trailed down to
- slip between the hairy opening, gathering up a finger tip of
- slippery juice, transferring the lubricant to her mouth. Peggy's
- pink tongue darted out, capturing the silver liquid, savoring the
- salty taste, as she licked her finger clean.
-
- Jim lay there, playing the part of Roger, spent but fully
- gratified. Peggy was the hottest and most exciting woman in the
- world. Peggy snuggled up to him and purred like a kitten, press-
- ing her heavy, pink tits into the side of his chest. Gently, he
- shook her, looked into her eyes and snapped his fingers once.
- Peggy closed her eyes briefly, then reopened them. "Did you enjoy
- that Peggy?" Jim asked lovingly.
-
- "I can't remember ever being that hot Jim. Promise we will
- do it again soon," she begged.
-
- Jim assured her that they would enjoy many similar experi-
- ments soon. "Now tell me everything that happened with this Roger
- character." Peggy did just that. They fucked twice more that
- night and slept like babies. Peggy loved playing the part of a
- hooker. Next time maybe it would be Jim's turn.
-
-
- CHAPTER TEN - HYPNOSEX
-
- Pam and Art enjoyed an existence very much like most other
- couples in Huntington Beach. Having moved around the globe as an
- army brat, Art had the occasion to see much of the world and
- California provided much of what he found to be comfortable. With
- a relatively good job, Art was satisfied with his professional
- development. His one concern seemed to be a fixation that he
- shared with millions of other men in their late thirties; he
- couldn't seem to get enough sex.
-
- It wasn't as if Pam and Art didn't enjoy their sex life; he
- just couldn't get his dick wet often enough. At times he ques-
- tioned himself as to his libido. Was he over sexed, or did he
- just want to live a complete life? He knew that life was way too
- short and that he should take advantage of what was available,
- while it was available.
-
- Pam shared a position with the majority of women in contem-
- porary society. She wasn't quite sure if she had ever really ex-
- perienced an orgasm. She enjoyed sex, however she couldn't recall
- ever having an earth shaking, eye-rolling, toe-tingling climax.
- Art was driven, via love, to make every effort to provide his
- gorgeous, 5"3", 115 pound, blond princess with the orgasm that
- she wanted and deserved.
-
- She did turn heads wherever she went. Her beautiful frame
- offered measurements of 36D-24-36. Her heavy, magnetic breasts
- were accented by a small waist and saucy buttocks that made most
- men mad with envy. Now and then she would break fear's icy grip
- and do something sexy and completely out of the ordinary. Art was
- always turned on when this would occur. She talked about other
- men gawking at her and fantasies like participating in a wet tee
- shirt contest. The thought of other men being aroused by Pam was
- exciting for Art.
-
- Being somewhat of a computer wiz, Art subscribed to computer
- several bulletin board services. One day while on line he
- downloaded several stories about hypnosis in the bedroom on an
- x-rated board. The concept interested Art, and his interest con-
- tinued to grow. He left a message for the author of the stories,
- and low and behold the author returned his message.
-
- The author's name was Jim, and he indicated that hypnosis
- could indeed be used to improve one's sex life. Jim had often
- used, what he referred to as, hypnosex to give his wife
- heightened sensibilities. She was able to climax on demand, make
- love with any lover she chose and completely satisfy her desires
- while increasing her sexual awareness.
-
- Imagine what could be accomplished, Art thought. Pam could
- learn how to bring herself to orgasm whenever she chose. He
- talked with her about this new approached and she indicated that
- she had tried hypnosis when she was a young girl, and it didn't
- work. After sharing this with Jim, it was explained to Art that
- we are often hypnotized and don't even know it. Because we have
- such erroneous ideas of hypnosis, we could easily be hypnotized
- and not be aware of it.
-
- Jim suggested that Art read the induction techniques that
- Jim had given and begin by trying some relaxation exercises with
- Pam. It surely couldn't hurt anything, but Jim cautioned Art not
- to attempt to do anything that Pam would find offensive or dras-
- tically contrary to her values.
-
- Art began by demonstrating how comfortable one could become
- by making their body completely relaxed. Pam began to enjoy the
- short sessions of relaxation. He eventually moved the sessions to
- the bath, where Pam could get in a hot tub of water and lose her-
- self in the warmth and increased weightlessness. This excited the
- hell out of Art, because he could sit by casually and look at his
- wife's lovely body as she closed her eyes and his voice spoke of
- lovely beach scenes; the white sand under her torso, the waves
- lapping at her exposed breasts, the sun gently warming her
- relaxed body, the birds filling the air with song. He took his
- time with her development in an effort to teach relaxation and
- increase her interest.
-
- In several weeks Art contacted Jim and indicated that
- progress was being made, but he wanted to intensify the relaxa-
- tion. Jim suggested that he may now being moving the sessions to
- the bedroom and introduce sensual massage as an element in the
- hypnosis effort.
-
- At the next session Art suggested to Pam that she could be-
- come even more relaxed. He told her that after the bath he would
- teach her another technique. When her bath was complete, Art
- carefully helped Pam dry off and escorted her to their bed. Pre-
- viously, he had prepared everything that would be needed and
- placed the items next to the bed: a towel, a bottle of body lo-
- tion and a hand-held electric massager.
-
- He suggested that she should imagine being on her favorite
- beach and that there would be no one within miles. She was taking
- advantage of the solitude and should feel comfortable to bask in
- the sun free from the restrictions of clothing. It was just the
- two of them. He asked her if she could feel the texture of the
- sand under her body as she rested on her belly; could she feel
- the warmth of the sun on her back, legs and buttocks. Art then
- began to ever-so-gently run his fingers down her back and stopped
- just above her buttocks at the small of the back. He touched her
- neck at the hair line and lightly ran his fingers up to and be-
- hind her ears. He could see her shiver slightly at his quiet ad-
- vances. He then went completely to the opposite end of this
- lovely body, just above the ankles and ran the back of his finger
- tips up her calves to the back of her knees. He stopped momen-
- tarily and continued the path up the back of her thighs and
- stopped where the cheeks of her lovely ass met her thighs.
-
- His cock was raging at this point. It was as big as he had
- ever remembered it being, and he could feel the semen leaking
- from its head, wetting his underwear. Out of the shear fire
- developing in his loins, he reached down and touched his stiff
- rod and stroked it lightly with one hand as his other continued a
- path up Pam's sides to the swell of the sides of her breasts
- resting on the sheets. He asked her if her breasts felt good
- resting on the warm sand and if she could feel her nipples becom-
- ing hard as they sought new depths.
-
- Art then turned Pam over and gently brushed the "sand" from
- her breasts, belly and thighs. He continued his efforts on the
- front of her willing body. After teasing her senses with his
- feather touch, her told her that he would be applying body lo-
- tion. Placing an ample amount of lotion in his hands to warm it,
- Art was soon applying the oily mixture to his lovely wife.
- Throughout the ensuing moments, Art continued to give Pam sug-
- gestions about becoming more and more relaxed; her body was feel-
- ing heavier and heavier; becoming part of the earth; that she was
- so relaxed she didn't want to move. He told her that she had
- never felt so relaxed and that she wanted to fall into a deep
- sleep; that's OK just let yourself go and enjoy the warmth of the
- sun on your body.
-
- As the lotion was urged into every pore of her body she was
- told to let her mind wander to any place that she chose. She
- could be anywhere in the world with whomever she wanted to be
- with. He suggested that she keep her eyes closed and imagine that
- she was being given a massage by anyone that she chose. Art con-
- tinued to massage his lovely wife's body as his cock strained for
- release. His hands began to become more aggressive and would oc-
- casionally linger on her ripe nipples and inner thighs. Soon Pam
- opened her legs to admit his advancing fingers. He could see her
- love juices begin to drip from her swollen pussy lips. He gently
- turned her over and began to knead the meat of her buttocks,
- thighs and back. Again she opened her thighs as a message to dip
- into her hot love cavern. Not wanting to take this session too
- far, Art began to prepare her for being fully awake. He told her
- that she was beginning to become fully awake; that her body was
- becoming lighter and lighter and that she would begin to count to
- ten. When she reached ten she would be fully awake and feel won-
- derful.
-
- Pam did as she was bid and told Art that they would be much
- more comfortable if he would take his things off and come to bed.
- The kids were in bed and there was nothing stopping them from
- relaxing together the rest of the night. It didn't take much en-
- couragement for his love rod to come to full attention. He rolled
- into Pam's arms, his chest rested on Pam's soft, warm breasts,
- and his raging cock soon found her oily, gaping tunnel to spill
- his seed into. This time everything was different. She threw her
- legs back in an effort to bring him as deeply inside of her as he
- could be. She actually shuddered this time as he filled his
- strong hands with the cheeks of her ass, and his cock continued
- to pummel her moist, hairy hole.
-
- Art's elation was doubled when he received a message from
- Jim indicating that Jim and Peggy would soon be planning a cruise
- to the Caribbean and invited Art and Pam to meet with them on the
- cruise. It would be on Norwegian Cruise Lines; the Seaward. The
- course of travel would be one evening at sea, one day on the
- cruise line's private island, on the Ocho Rios in Jamaica,
- another day at sea with a stop in the Caymen Islands, a half day
- in Cozumel and return. The thought of a cruise had always excited
- Art. What excitement would they find in this new adventure?
-
- You only go around once, Art mused. What the hell! Pam was
- amenable to the idea. It would be great to be away from the
- everyday toils and the kids for a while. It was all set. The date
- would be in February and arrangements had been made. Anticipation
- was beginning to drive Art wild. He continued his experimentation
- with Pam's relaxation techniques and began to introduce himself
- to a series of fantasies. The holidays came and went, building a
- natural anticipation in the two couples.
-
- The Miami Harbor was bustling with activity. Art and Pam
- couldn't get over the size of the ship. Baggage check was con-
- ducted without incident, and they walked up the half mile long
- winding ramp which led to the entry way. Their eyes traveled from
- one couple to another wondering if they would see Peggy and Jim
- among the couples entering the ship. The excitement continued to
- increase as their eyes fell upon any number of beautiful looking
- couples, men and women.
-
- After settling in their cabin, they removed to the top of
- the pool deck for departure. The ship's engines began their slow
- but steady pull away from the dock as well-wishers moved about
- like ants ten stories below the couple's vantage point. Once the
- ship was clear of the harbor, Pam and Art ordered a drink from
- Captain Billy's Bar and reclined on the lounge chairs on the main
- pool deck. Already bodies began to rid themselves of clothing to
- enjoy the 75 degree warmth of the sun deck.
-
- Art could feel his manhood start its upward climb to erec-
- tion as one lovely woman after another pranced by his perch. One
- in particular seemed to provide interest as he looked out over
- the deck behind his dark glasses. Each step her rolling buttocks
- seemed to provide invitation as the sway of her tantalizing
- breasts lightly covered by a thin clinging tee shirt hypnotized
- him and fed his erection. She continued to skip about the deck
- with every intention of attracting the gaze of every man on
- board.
-
- He knew that she could feel eyes on her as she went to the
- bar and returned with a drink. Suddenly she returned to the bar
- to retrieve a cocktail napkin and provided another view of her
- exciting body. Her gathered suit bottom was scant and hugged the
- rolling curves of her tight fanny from the swaying cheeks of her
- ass to the deep crack which provided the division between these
- smooth globes. Art's eyes traced her pubic arch and perceived
- tight golden curls of hair furtively peaking from beneath the
- cloth designed to contain them. Traveling upward he saw each
- heavy breast rise and fall with the motion of her shoulders. She
- knew he was watching every move and exaggerated each to enhance
- his interest. Art was hoping that this would be Peggy, but where
- could Jim be.
-
- Pam couldn't help but to notice Art's interest. Oddly enough
- she didn't feel jealous. It was kind of exciting to see Art's
- focus and the resulting bulge develop in his shorts. She knew
- that soon she would feel that thick bone driving inside of her
- slippery love tunnel. Her own interest began to develop as many
- of the ship's men began to move about the deck. Thin men, fat
- men, muscular men, tall men, short, suave, fast talkers, relaxed
- attitudes and mysterious men all provided a circus of observa-
- tion. There were several that she seemed attracted to. She knew
- that she could turn on most of the men on the ship and was bound
- and determined to do just that.
-
- Shortly thereafter as Pam was sipping an iced pina colada,
- she noticed a man that she had not previously seen on deck. She
- almost laughed to herself when she began to ponder the humor of
- invariably seeing several people while on vacation that bore a
- strong resemblance to folks that she knew back come. This nice
- looking men was the spitting image of Larry, her next door neigh-
- bor. She had always fantasized about having an affair with Larry
- but was hesitant because he lived so close to her. This guy's
- fanny was even cuter than Larrys, she smiled as she thought. She
- could feel the warmth develop in her loins as the thin material
- of her panties massaged her soft pussy each time she squeezed her
- thighs together. She was becoming wet thinking about a nice thick
- penis resting above a pair of heavy, hairy balls.
-
- When Pam and Art returned to the room to get ready for an
- early dinner, there was a flashing light on the phone indicating
- that there was a message at the desk. Art's heart jumped slightly
- knowing that it may be a message from Peggy and Jim. His hopes
- were justified as the young English girl told him that Jim had
- called and asked her to relate that they were in cabin 4010 and
- would like Art to call when he returned. He no sooner hung up the
- phone when he began dialing cabin 4010. Peggy answered the phone,
- and her voice provided further excitement. "Hello. This is Art. I
- presume that I'm talking to Peggy. How are you?" he said with a
- slight quiver in his voice.
-
- "Fine, thank you. I've heard so much about you. Jim tells me
- that this is your first cruise. I'm convinced that you will love
- it. Please let me know if there is anything I can do to make it
- more comfortable. Tell Pam that I said Hi, and I'm anxious to
- meet her. Would you like to talk to Jim?" Peggy's upbeat voice
- rang out the question.
-
- Jim and Art agreed to meet on the lower pool deck for
- drinks, an informal dinner and conversation. Art told Jim that he
- could recognize them because Pam would be wearing a blue and
- white striped halter top outfit with white shorts.
-
- His eyes couldn't help but to wander as Jim got off the
- elevator on the lower pool deck. His anxiety increased while
- looking for Art and Pam. He was also very proud of how great
- Peggy looked in her revealing swim suit and open cover-up. She
- wore a black and white perrot doll, two-piece suit that accen-
- tuated her heavy, milk-white breasts on the top. The bottoms
- separated and hugged her firm, solid buttocks as they rose and
- fell with each step. Jim could feel himself becoming hard as he
- watcher her tease the audience on the lower deck. Just a hint of
- reddish pubic hair peaked from the vee of her suit bottom.
-
- They approached the Tiki bar and were greeted by a rather
- pleasant English bar tender. "What will be your pleasure,
- friends?" asked Bill the bar tender.
-
- Jim looked inquiringly at Peggy, shrugged and suggested to
- no one in particular, "two pena coladas, Peg?" She nodded her
- agreement and Bill began the mixology ritual. Jim's eyes con-
- tinued to scan the participants, and his eyes fell on one of the
- loveliest creatures in his memory. She was so lovely, he didn't
- even notice that she was wearing a blue striped halter top and
- white shorts. As it dawned on him that the couple approaching
- were likely Art and Pam, he wanted to check his breath and locate
- his Pulitzer Prize so that he could impress them. He was, in
- short, pleased that the couple that they were soon to meet were
- as attractive as they obviously were.
-
- Pam and Art seemed somewhat shy as they approached. Jim
- noticed their apparent discomfort and tried his best to lighten
- the moment. Jim took the initiative to break the ice by making
- the introductions, ordering drinks and offering both jokes and
- small talk. Soon, as is often the case, the ladies generated
- their own conversation about the children, awful teachers,
- P.T.A., and wardrobes. Jim and Art took a walk to the sporting
- deck to observe the skeet shooting exercises.
-
- "How much have you really benefited through the use of hyp-
- nosis, Peggy?" asked Pam as they settled onto deck chairs
- situated at pool side.
-
- Peggy became excited as she shared her successes with Pam.
- As they started on their second Pina Colada and Margarita, Peggy
- spoke to her of progress in weight control, assertiveness and im-
- proved sex life. "Not only I am in control of my destiny, each
- day is filled with excitement and growth," Peggy told Pam.
-
- "What do you mean by 'excitement and growth?'" Pam inquired
- of Peggy.
-
- Peggy went on to explain how her sexual life had been im-
- proved by the added variety that hypnosex could offer. She didn't
- used to think as much of herself. She didn't really know what may
- have happened in her childhood to give her an inferiority com-
- plex, but until Jim showed her what potential she had, she found
- sex unexciting and was somewhat introverted. Now she found other
- men attractive, became excited when she knew she could excite
- others and was able to develop new relationships that helped her
- in her professional development as well as her personal growth.
-
- Pam was somewhat incredulous, "doesn't Jim get jealous when
- he thinks about you involved with other men?"
-
- "Quite the contrary. He encourages it. He knows I love him,
- and I think he likes to show me off. There was a time when I
- would have worn a bathing suit only if I had to in order to go
- into the swimming pool. Now I like to wear as little as possible
- so I can excite other men as well as Jim. It's put the excitement
- back into our marriage and multiplied it a hundred-fold. In my
- mind, I can fuck anyone I want to. I have had Kevin Cosner suck
- my breasts... not just imagination... he has actually laid on top
- of me and put my tits in his hot mouth. Sean Connery has been
- kind enough to give me a full body massage with his strong hands
- on my hot flesh. It continues to get better, and I can be with
- anyone I want to. I usually like to finish up with Jim. He will
- always be the best, especially after becoming as excited as the
- fantasy makes him. Sometimes you should try it. I don't think you
- would be sorry. As an example, look out at this sea of human man
- flesh around the pool," Peggy suggested. "Don't any of them ap-
- peal to you?"
-
- Pam's eyes began to scan the men around the pool. "There are
- a few men that are wonderfully built," she said.
-
- "Well, imagine how they would look without their suits. Im-
- agine how it would feel to have their hands on your beautiful
- breasts, their lips sucking on your nipples, their hands holding
- your tight buttocks. Doesn't that make you feel a tingle between
- your legs?" Peggy asked.
-
- Pam started to feel just that tingle that Peggy was eluding
- to. "Now that you mention it, I have had fantasies about making
- it with other men. I just seem to fight the urge because of how I
- was brought up. We were always taught that it was wrong. I do
- find that guy over there with the red suit on exciting," Pam con-
- fided to Peggy.
-
- "Take a good look, memorize each muscle and bulge, close
- your eyes and imagine laying with your legs open, and he is rub-
- bing the head of his hard rod against the lips of your vagina. He
- is gathering your nectar on the head of his cock so he can slide
- it inside of your body," Peggy urged.
-
- Pam's eyes closed and her mind began to wander. She could
- feel her nipples harden, and as she moved her legs slightly back
- and forth, she could feel the moisture begin to flow between her
- legs. With each moment that went by, she continued to squeeze her
- buttocks together to increase the sensation. "Oh christ!" she
- said through pursed lips. "If I keep thinking about him, I know I
- will have a climax right here. We had better change the subject
- for a while."
-
- Peggy's smile was broadening as she watched Pam's subtle
- display of sexuality. "OK, on a slightly different note... How
- would you like to do some exploring on Pleasure Island when we
- get there? The four of us can mix up a batch of drinks and go on
- a hike up the little river. They have a great little water falls
- about three miles from the beach. The road is within a half mile
- and I'm told that nobody likes to hike that last half mile. We
- should have the water falls to ourselves," Peggy hinted.
-
- Pam seemed interested as she told Peggy, "I think the guys
- will get a kick out of it. Let's be adventurous.
-
- Meanwhile on the sporting deck, Jim and Art were discussing
- their limited interest in guns and shooting sports. More often
- than not they discussed a series of lovely young lady joggers
- that continued to jaunt by. "I'm just glad to be away from com-
- puters and business for a while, Jim. I think that Pam and I
- needed to get away from the kids and home for awhile. I don't
- really care what we do, if anything, while away. I just want to
- relax, have a few drinks and fuck like a dog," Art pronounced.
-
- "You and me, both, Art. The atmosphere of the cruise and the
- islands brings out the libido in me. Incidentally, I don't want
- to offend, but Pam is one of the hottest women I've ever seen.
- She could give the pope a stiff," Jim offered kiddingly.
-
- Art smirked and said, "Oh that's OK, Jim. I would feel bad
- if you thought she had to sneak up on a glass of water to get a
- drink. I think she's beautiful, and I appreciate it when others
- think that she is exciting. Same goes for me. Peggy has a great
- set of tits. My only dilemma is whether I like her tits or her
- great ass better. I wouldn't mind seeing those puppies of hers
- without the suit.
-
- "Who knows. You just may have the opportunity to do that.
- She claims that she is going to broaden her horizons on this
- vacation and get a little real sun. We've done a few hypnotic
- fantasies about sun bathing before we left home. It turned her on
- so much, one night she had eight climaxes just laying out in the
- sun and playing with her pussy. If the moment is right, I'll give
- her some suggestions that prompt her to explore her sensuality,"
- Jim said with raised eyebrows.
-
- "I can feel myself getting hard at the thought of it, Jim.
- What do you say we get back to the pool, get the girls and some-
- thing to eat?" Art suggested.
-
- Their dinner was a pleasant experience. Too many varieties
- and a little too much to eat. After a short rest in their respec-
- tive rooms and a change of clothes, the two couples returned to
- the pool deck to avail themselves of the fun calypso beat offered
- by a native band. Jim was very enamored by Pam based on the heavy
- state of his rod, yet still got excited as he saw many of the
- eyes on board turned toward Peggy as she exhibited her flesh
- while frolicking on the deck. The four adventurers swam together,
- rolled around in one of the hot tubs and generally had a warm,
- enjoyable time that evening. As the stars bid that day good bye,
- each of the couples retired to their beds to investigate the
- pleasures of an increasing sensuality.
-
- "Art and Pam are really nice people, honey. Don't you think
- so?" Jim asked of Peggy as she shed her cover-up and swim suit.
-
- Peggy smiled demurely and said without expecting an im-
- mediate response, "you would like to see his cock in my mouth,
- wouldn't you, Jim? I saw how your bone came to attention when he
- was watching me walk around the deck. I got terribly excited when
- he brushed up against me in the hot tub. I felt his hard rod. I
- think he is hung well, Jim. I think I would like to feel his cock
- in me oily hole, honey. Imagine that! If her were touching my
- naked buttocks and kissing my neck. That turns you on, doesn't
- it, baby? You weren't able to hide your interest in Pam either.
- Her breasts are very lovely. I'd like to see them in your mouth
- as Art pumps his stiff bone in me." They continued to talk one
- another into a frenzy. Jim induced hypnosis on Peggy and gave her
- a sensual massage by Art. Their evening ended by Jim bringing her
- back to reality and fucking her mouth and hairy pussy three
- times. Sleep followed with saucy dreams and exciting hopes for a
- new day in a new port.
-
- Pleasure Island, as it was called, was a private island
- owned by the cruise line. It was little more than three miles by
- seven miles with three small lakes, a river and miles of beaches.
- As Jim stumbled out of bed, showered, brushed his teeth and
- dressed, he heard the ship's announcer on the intercom. "We are
- nearing the coast of Pleasure Island. The first shuttle will
- leave in one hour."
-
- "I'll see you on the top deck, honey. I'll have coffee and
- breakfast waiting," Jim offered to Peggy as he was leaving the
- state room. "Get your sweet ass out of the rack and get moving.
- There's a wonderful new world out there to see."
-
- The cool and salty morning air brushed Jim's cleanly shaven
- face as the elevator door opened on the top deck. His eyes were
- bathed with the sight of land through the mist of the morning.
- The sun was already burning off the fog and the day promised
- little humidity and lots of sunshine. The crew was bustling about
- cleaning the decks and placing deck chairs around the pool. Other
- adventurers were creating small traffic patterns as they acquired
- their coffee and breakfast. Jim located a table with a great view
- of the approaching island, deposited his towel and bag and got
- into line for the morning's goodies.
-
- "Hello, Jim. Did you sleep well?" Pam inquired as she ap-
- proached Jim's table.
-
- "Like a baby. I think I could get used to a steady diet of
- this. Damn, you look great today. Please join me. Peggy will be
- here shortly. I hope you won't be offended when I tell you this,
- but Peggy found Art very exciting. In fact, he was the subject of
- her fantasy last night," Jim revealed as his eyes traced each
- move that Pam made in her approach to the table.
-
- Pam blushed slightly, "he is an attractive man, and she
- would be blind not to notice. However, she isn't doing badly for
- herself either. Did anyone ever tell you that you resemble Har-
- rison Ford? I find him exciting and have seen almost everything
- he had done from Star Wars to his most recent."
-
- Jim had been told that on several occasions, but really
- couldn't see the resemblance much himself. "My kids have always
- told me that. If you think he's nice looking, I'll take that as a
- compliment. If anyone as lovely as you considers me attractive, I
- guess I can die now and not pass go, collect two hundred dollars,
- and do directly to heaven," Jim said kiddingly as they both
- chuckled.
-
- Peggy came ambling by and was soon followed by Art. "You're
- out of my sight for a half hour and already your cheating on me
- with Pam. Well, if you must cheat, it may as well be with the
- loveliest guest on board," Peggy teased as she sat down. The two
- couples had a leisurely breakfast and made plans to adventure
- onto the island in an hour.
-
- Getting to the water falls was not as difficult as they had
- thought. There were five taxi stands on the only road on the is-
- land. The driver told them that the blue taxi sign was the one
- closest to the water falls, and a taxi came by every half hour or
- so. The ride to the blue taxi stop was interesting because they
- were all crammed into the back seat, and Peggy and Pam had to sit
- rather close to the two men. As they emerged from the taxi, the
- sun fell full on the faces of the two couples. They had packed a
- light lunch and brought two thermos jugs full of pirate drinks.
- After a short journey prompted by the directions of the driver,
- they could soon hear the subtle song of the falls.
-
- Other than the swaying buttocks of the two lovely women that
- walked in front of the two men, Jim thought that this was likely
- one of the most beautiful sights he had ever seen when he ap-
- proached the falls. Crystal clear water cascaded over the rock
- formation and cut a path through a green garden. The girls
- quickly placed a blanket on the ground and lost their outer wrap-
- pings. Peggy's body was taunt as it stretched out in a run for
- the water. Each muscle and curve was accented by the sun with
- each move. Pam was a little more hesitant as she approached the
- water. "Do you think that there is anything alive in the water?"
- she asked as her foot reached the shore of the small lake.
-
- "Not just yet, honey. Soon there will be some major snakes
- pop out if you look any better than you do right now," Art said
- with a smile. Soon both girls were frolicking in the water. Jim
- and Art settled down with a drink on towels brought along for
- that purpose.
-
- The men soon dozed off, lulled by the sound of the water-
- fall. Jim couldn't believe his eyes when he opened them. Pam and
- Peggy had removed their suits and were climbing the path beside
- the falls. He looked to see if Art was aware and noticed that Art
- was already paying close attention as he stroked his cock through
- his suit. "Holy christ! Why didn't you wake me?" Jim chastised
- Art.
-
- "You haven't missed much, Jim. They just took their things
- off, and I think they believe that we are snoozing. Damn, your
- wife has great tits. I love the way they sway when she thinks she
- is about to fall. Her ass is so smooth and well shaped," Art an-
- nounced almost as if to himself.
-
- Jim felt his cock stiffen as Art spoke of Peggy's body. Pam
- was indeed beautiful, he thought. She could compete with any
- young girl in a glamour magazine. Playboy, look out! As Jim
- watched Pam and Peggy helping one another up the side of the
- falls, he slipped his cock from the side of his suit and began to
- stroke it. Art couldn't help but notice what he was doing and
- soon followed his lead. "Are you looking at my wife or yours,
- Jim?" Art asked without taking his eyes off the girls.
-
- "Does it matter?" Jim asked as he continued to lightly run
- his hand up and down his blood engorged fuck tube. "I haven't had
- a raging hard-on like this in five years. Your wife is gorgeous,
- and Peggy has never looked so good with her tits glistening as
- they are and her ass wiggling. Wouldn't you love to have your
- bone in one of them right now?"
-
- "It's OK with me if it's OK with you. I have had fantasies
- about fucking Peggy ever since I first saw her. Now that I'm
- looking right up Peggy's ass, do you have any reservations about
- her making it with another man?" Art asked.
-
- Jim looked at him with a serious look in his eyes and said,
- "the thought of you fucking Peggy does nothing but excite the
- hell out of me. It'll be her call. If she wants some strange
- cock, it may as well be yours. Go for it."
-
- The two men continued to pull on their enlarged cocks until
- the girls began to return from the falls. As they approached,
- they could see that the men were no longer asleep and attempted
- to cover themselves with the clothes they carried. "I hope you're
- not angry that we tried to get a little closer to nature, Art. It
- was wonderful. You should try it," Pam said as she traded her
- partially wet clothing for a towel to hide behind.
-
- Art jumped up off the towel, smiled, dropped his suit and
- said, "doesn't bother me a bit, Pam." He began to head toward the
- water, and Peggy's eyes riveted on his heavy cock as it bounced
- off his well-tanned leg. "Last one in's a piker."
-
- Pam threw caution to the wind and followed Art into the
- water. Jim's excitement increased as he saw Pam's buttocks roll
- with the rhythm of her unabashed dance to the water. Jim stood
- up, looked at Peggy as he raised his eyebrows and asked, "shall
- we?"
-
- Peggy dropped her clothes, put her hands on her waist,
- cocked her hips to one side and wiggled her hefty breasts at Jim.
- "Let's get in the water before I lose my courage," she giggled.
- He removed his suit, walked over, grabbed her hand and they ap-
- proached the water as their eyes sought the flesh of their new
- friends. Jim's cock began its upward journey to mild erection as
- they entered the water.
-
- Art had already lifted Pam into his arms in the water in an
- effort to show off her lovely assets. Pam's breasts were bobbing
- in the cool water and her hardy nipples stood out as little
- marbles on the globes of her substantial, yet firm breasts. As
- Jim and Peggy came closer, Art lifted Pam's smooth buttocks out
- of the water and seemed to point them at the other couple. Jim's
- hand closed more tightly on Peggy's hand as his eyes met the wet
- hair that graced Pam's pouting pussy slit. He could feel his cock
- begin to throb while he viewed the ball-like flesh of Pam's ass
- cheeks. Suddenly, Peggy's hand was on his raging penis and began
- to stoke its full length under the water. "I haven't felt you
- this hard in a long time, honey," she commented as she turned to
- rub the nipples of her soft tits against his strong arm.
-
- Jim swung Peggy through the air in a swirl in an effort to
- lift her slightly out of the cool water to place her buttocks and
- breasts before the inquiring eyes of the other couple. Jim was
- proud of Peggy's body and became even more excited as the other
- couple's eyes became glued to her flesh. Peggy never dropped a
- stroke on Jim's erection. Her hand glided easily over the skin of
- his fuck tool aided by the water, yet it seemed to stick peri-
- odically. Jim's balls were being pulled by his stretching erec-
- tion as he filled his hands with Peggy's firm buttocks and
- covered her mouth with his. Peggy placed his hard rod between her
- legs and tightened them like a vice while she filled her hands
- with his hairy ass and hid her tongue in his sucking mouth.
-
- Pam's excitement continued to sky rocket as she reviewed the
- display of the other couple. She reached up, cupped her lovely
- left breast and began to pinch its rock-hard nipple. Her eyes
- rolled up in her head as Art's hand found the deep crack of her
- ass cheeks, allowed it to caress its length and dip into her
- hairy, swollen love tunnel. He inserted two fingers into her
- honey pot and lowered his head to tweak her nipple with hardened
- lips. He then fully sucked her nipple into his softening mouth
- and continued to suck while his hand assault continued on her
- flooded pussy.
-
- The lips of Peggy's deep love hole were opening like a
- flower as her excitement increased. She soon felt Jim's hands
- glide over her clenching ass cheeks, lift her by her buttocks,
- spread the lips of her oily pussy and insert the head of his
- thick fuck bone. They felt some resistance to his entry due to
- the washing action of the water, but as the head of his penis be-
- came covered with her love fluids, his cock made progress into
- her depths. She had never fucked in the water with another
- couple, and it didn't take long for her to begin her first mind-
- blowing climax. "Oh fuck! Blow your hot cream in my hole, honey.
- Fuck it up in there and cover my fucking guts with your boiling
- cock juice," she raged as Jim's pulled her ass toward his as-
- saulting cock bone.
-
- Pam and Art stopped briefly to watch Peggy enjoying her or-
- gasm. Peggy's full breasts were flopping up out of the water and
- pounding on Jim's hairy chest with each thrust of his pole into
- her oily slot. Art glided through the water attempting to get
- closer to the wildly fucking couple. He wanted to get as close as
- possible in an effort see their bodies locking in their lusty
- embrace. As his legs cut through the water in his short journey,
- one hand remained on Pam's large breasts and the other hand con-
- tinued its assault on her deep, hot slit. Soon they were standing
- next to the wildly fucking couple. Art turned Pam so that his
- cock bone rested in the deep crack of her tight ass. His hand
- guided his hot rod down the division between her fanny globes and
- placed the head of his cock at the entrance to her slippery
- pussy. She spread her long legs in welcome to his hard cock and
- felt Art's trembling hand slipping quickly over the hard nipples
- of her floating mammary glands.
-
- Suddenly, Peggy reached out, in her last moment of passion,
- grabbed Art's hand and crushed it to her breast. Jim, Art and Pam
- had a look of disbelief on their faces as their eyes were riveted
- to Art's fingers, filled with Peggy's tit flesh. She continued to
- spasm with Jim's cock embedded in her hairy love tunnel. Jim was
- crazed by the initiative that Peggy had taken and fell into the
- arms of lust. Pam bent back to offer her gaping pussy to Art's
- prodding penis. She then reached down to feel Jim's bone pulsing
- as it spent his load into Peggy. Jim's cock began its long jour-
- ney to the depths of Pam's quim.
-
- Spent as they were, Peggy and Jim parted, moved back and
- began to watch Art drive his bone into his wife. They could see
- Art treating himself to Pam's swinging globes and the rock-hard
- nipples that adorned them. The look on Pam's face was that of a
- hungry lioness, and she began to grunt with each thrust of Art's
- cock. "Fuck it in there, baby. Stick your long pole in my hot
- pussy just like Jim did to Peggy. Spill your cock lava into my
- pit," Pam shouted through clenched teeth.
-
- Art pulled his bouncing cock from Pam's gaping pussy and
- turned her around. She jumped in the water throwing her legs wide
- and grabbed Art under his strong arms. Art re-inserted his bold
- sword into her waiting hole and began pumping her again. Jim
- whispered something to Peggy and moved in behind Pam. He reached
- around Pam and cradled her breasts with his hands allowing her
- ripe nipples to fall between his thumbs and forefingers. Pam
- released her grip on Art and fell back into Jim's arms while
- holding fast to Art's hips with her legs. Pam was suspended be-
- tween the two men. Art was driving his meat into her womanhood
- and Jim was manipulated her fleshy breasts.
-
- Peggy moved behind Jim and reached for his swollen, hairy
- balls as she began to tenderly bite on the muscles of his back.
- The attached couple were now fucking with a frenzy, their excite-
- ment enhanced by the ministrations of their new friends. Pam's
- eyes were wild. "Jim has got my tits in his hands, Art. Another
- man is playing with my hard nipples. Does that drive you wild,
- mother fucker?" she asked as she panted.
-
- "I love the sight of his fingers on your nipples. Peggy is
- playing with my fuck nuts. Can you feel her hand down there? My
- balls are so tight I think they are going to explode," Art
- grunted. Peggy allowed her hand to continue its path beyond Art's
- balls to his penetrating cock. She could feel his straining penis
- enter Pam. She felt the slick, hair-covered pussy open to admit
- Arts pounding cock as she pressed her soft, heavy tits into Art's
- back.
-
- "Jim has got his cock rubbing against my back, Art. I can
- feel his bone on my buns, honey. It feels so good against my ass
- as you're driving your cock into me," Pam jerked out the words.
-
- "How would you like to feel his cock in you, Pam? Can you
- feel his bone spreading the lips of your hairy pussy as it spears
- you? Can you feel his cum pumping into your belly? Can you feel
- his hands on the cheeks of your ass, his lips on your nipples,
- his tongue in your cunt?" Art went on to heighten her excitement.
- Pam soon began to convulse uncontrollably as she climaxed on Art
- spurting cock bone.
-
- The two couples separated. Art took Pam into his arms and
- gently held her as a helpless baby. Jim and Peggy fell into one
- another's arms, smiled at each other and headed for the beach and
- their towels. As soon as Art and Pam regained their composure,
- they too returned to dry land. Each of the four friends were
- dealing with the interaction in their own way. Little was said as
- each felt somewhat embarrassed by the scene. They soon began to
- dress and headed back to the road to catch the taxi back to the
- dock. It was Jim who first broke the silence while they waited
- for their ride. "I guess we all feel a little weird about this,
- but tell me, have any of you ever been so hot before in your
- lives?"
-
- Smiles appeared on the faces of the other three. Art
- responded, "Pam never felt so good to me, and Peggy's hand on my
- balls almost made me pass out while I was giving it to Pam. I'm
- so damned tired and drained, it will be a good three minutes
- before I'm ready to go again. Hey! Did it dawn on any of you yet
- that we forgot to eat?"
-
- Laughter mingled with gasps of disbelief from each of them
- as the taxi pulled up to carry them back to the ship. The ride
- back was short and quiet. Matted hair and half-wet clothing
- served to make the ride a little more uncomfortable than it would
- have been. The taxi pulled up to the dock and deposited the tired
- foursome. They gathered up their packages and began their trek up
- the gang plank. Fernando greeted them as they re-entered the ship
- and asked, "was your stay pleasurable, ladies and gentlemen?"
-
- "And that's not the half of it," announced Pam. "That's a
- great little island you have there." Pam and Peggy helped one
- another with their gear as the men trailed behind watching each
- step of the girls and quietly reading one another's mind. They
- were convinced that tomorrow would promise even greater enjoy-
- ment.
-
-
- CHAPTER ELEVEN - MIND SEX
-
- Jim could feel himself becoming more interested in what
- wonders hypnosis had to offer he and Peggy and their sexual
- desires. He decided to take Peggy to a new level of sexual
- heights. He had helped Peggy experience complete hallucination of
- the senses on two different occasions. The first was to find her
- on a secluded beach masturbating, and the second was a wonderful
- massage by a great looking stranger. Now what? She had still
- never had a stranger's cock in her body. Jim decided that would
- be the next adventure. He would introduce Peggy to this ex-
- perience on Saturday night.
-
- The week seemed to drag on. It seemed as though Saturday
- would never come. Each time Jim looked at Peggy he thought about
- how exciting it would be for Peggy to give her body to a strange
- man; her lovely breasts, her round buttocks, her hot pussy.
- Strange hands on her skin; her lips on another man's penis; his
- hairy balls resting in her hands and on the soft cheeks of her
- ass. He went wild with the thought of it. And then Saturday came.
-
- They spent their evening in the same fashion as usual. A
- movie, a pizza and a bottle of wine were their entertainment. The
- movie was not bad, the pizza was different and the wine was
- great. Jim did have a hard time keeping his mind on anything
- other than sex. As they prepared to retire, Jim's apprehension
- increased. Peggy had no idea what was to take place. As Peggy
- dressed in her night clothes to get into bed, again Jim's mind
- wandered to thoughts of another man gazing on her wonderful body.
- Jim snapped his fingers twice, his regular post hypnotic suggest-
- ion that would place Peggy into a deep trance state. He watched
- her eyes close. A warm smile appeared on her lips, and she melted
- into a deep sleep.
-
- Jim continued to bring Peggy deeper and deeper into her
- trance. He suggested to her that upon reaching her deepest trance
- state she would begin to feel very sexy. He continued along these
- lines for quite some time until he could perceive Peggy actually
- beginning to squirm. She was hot and wanted fucked. Jim told her
- that he would soon wake her and when she awoke, she would find
- herself all alone and extremely horny. She would dress completely
- in a tight fitting outfit, get in the car and go to the all-night
- grocery store.
-
- When she reached the store, she would complete the shopping
- that she was going to do the next day. While at the grocery
- store, she would meet a stranger with a green ribbon in the zip-
- per of his coat. As soon as she identified the green ribbon, the
- man wearing the ribbon would be the most exciting man she had
- ever seen. She would have trouble taking her eyes off of him.
- This would be the man she always wanted to make love to.
-
- Jim went on to explain that she would be attracted to this
- man so much, because she may never have the chance to see him
- again. He further told her not to concern herself with Jim be-
- cause he would be out of town on business for two days. Before he
- woke Peggy up he decided to give her one more post hypnotic sug-
- gestion. That suggestion took the form of the length of each of
- her orgasms. He would pyramid them. He told her that the inten-
- sity of her climax would be double what she ever experienced
- before.
-
- After assuring her that she would remember nothing about
- being in a trance, Jim woke Peggy up. Now would follow the first
- test. Would she awaken, go about the business of getting ready
- for the grocery store and not be able to see Jim. He waited with
- a great deal of interest as he watched Peggy get ready to go to
- the store. He sat in a chair in the corner of the master bedroom
- silently.
-
- Peggy got up from the bed and went into the bathroom off the
- bedroom without acknowledging Jim's presence. He never took his
- eyes off Peggy as she began to pin her hair up to take a shower.
- Her hair secure, she removed her night clothes, and Jim's blood
- began to race. His thick penis began to grow as he viewed her
- lovely bouncing breasts and the cleave of her ass cheeks. Her
- soft pubic hair was brought into view as she turned. She stopped
- in front of the mirror and began to admire herself.
-
- Her hands reached up and gently cupped her ample breasts.
- Peggy pointed the nipples at the mirror and a smile crept over
- her lips. As the thumb and forefinger of each hand pinched the
- generous pink nipples of each mound of flesh her eyes rolled up
- and closed. Maintaining her grasp on one of the nipples, she al-
- lowed her other hand to dip down to her bush. Jim had never seen
- Peggy alone and unaware of a spectator. He now understood what a
- voyeur must feel like. His hard rod stretched to its maximum
- length.
-
- Peggy began to furiously rub her clit and manipulate her
- breasts. Jim heard a soft moan and Peggy turned from the mirror
- to head for the shower. Jim's excitement continued as Peggy en-
- tered the hot stream of the shower and soaped every inch of her
- hot body. She toweled herself off and moved toward the dressing
- table. As she bent over to open a drawer, her buttocks were of-
- fered to his intense view; so pink and round and tight. Suddenly
- she removed a tight kelley green pair of slacks and tossed them
- on the bed next to the dressing table.
-
- Next she removed a white knit top and placed it next to the
- slacks. Peggy entered her undies drawer and withdrew a sexy pair
- of panties. As she reached down for the panties, Jim could see
- her heavy breasts swing down and undulate as if they had a life
- of their own.
-
- Peggy stepped into the panties and pulled them up over her
- tight buttocks. She quickly donned her slacks and pulled the top
- on without a bra. Admiring herself in the mirror, her hands went
- to her breasts, and she felt the weight in her hands. Satisfied
- that her body would look its best in this outfit, she reached for
- a comb. She combed her hair and reached for her make-up case to
- place the final touches on this portrait. Uncontrollably, seminal
- fluid began to seep out of Jim's straining cock. He began think-
- ing about old baseball games to keep himself from blowing his en-
- tire wad. Peggy left the room and quickly grabbed her coat and
- keys. She was out of the door before Jim could follow her through
- the house.
-
- Jim quickly got his essentials and began looking for his
- keys. He couldn't find his god-damned keys. His mind was reeling.
- Suddenly he remembered that he had left them in his overcoat,
- retrieved them and headed for the garage. He was shaking with an-
- ticipation as he grabbed his jacket and reached into the pocket
- for his green ribbon. His wife was off to the grocery store and
- would likely find more that ground chuck upon completion of her
- mission. He headed toward the grocery store with his cock still
- heavy with anticipation.
-
- Jim's heart jumped once again as he pulled into the parking
- lot and saw Peggy's van parked there. Still shaking slightly, he
- exited the car and began his journey into the store. On his way,
- he recovered a shopping cart in the parking lot and pushed it
- toward the automatic doors. He thought how humorous it must be
- that some of the observers in the area were likely thinking that
- he was doing his part to bring one of the carts back to the
- store. Actually, he was trying to hide his substantial hard on.
- As he entered the store, his eyes began to search for Peggy. His
- gaze then went to the zipper of his jacket to assure himself that
- his ribbon was in place. It was. Where would she go first? He
- would try the dairy isle. True to habit, Peggy was at the dairy
- section viewing the offerings. Jim just stood back and watched.
- She was a good shopper, moving through the isles quickly captur-
- ing all of those necessities that she was so used to buying.
-
- It wasn't busy in the store. There were only several shop-
- pers there at the time. Many of them appeared to be single men
- struggling through this chore. It didn't take Jim long to observe
- that Peggy had removed her coat and hung it over the back of the
- cart. Soon, it became apparent that the men in the store were
- watching her fine ass as it passed. When she reached for an item,
- her breasts would often swing against the material of her top and
- thrill the onlookers. Jim's cock remained hard and ready. He
- decided that it was about time he allowed Peggy to notice him. He
- traveled the reverse way of the traffic pattern that Peggy had
- established so he could face her in his travels. As he rounded
- the soup section, there she was.
-
- Peggy was being followed casually by two men, one behind the
- other. At this point they were merely pretending to shop. It was
- obvious that they were benefiting from the view of her great
- body. This excited Jim even more. Soon Peggy's casual gaze met
- Jim. She looked away and then her head snapped back to rivet on
- the green ribbon of his jacket. She immediately began to blush.
- She quickly looked away and began sneaking peeks at this
- "stranger." As she turned the corner, Jim could see that she was
- trying to see more of him.
-
- Again they appeared in the same isle, the wine section,
- going in their respective directions. Peggy stopped to view the
- selection, Jim continued his slow walk toward her. Jim knew Peggy
- well enough to know that she would probably not make the first
- move. It was his responsibility. As he closed in, he stopped and
- asked her if she liked the brand of wine she held in her hand.
- She indicated that she liked to try different brands and types,
- and he indicated that he did also. As their conversation
- developed, she became more talkative. They began to walk in the
- same direction, talking about many of their interests. Her eyes
- periodically moved to his bulge. Her nose became filled with his
- scent. She was getting aroused just walking next to him.
-
- They found that they had quite a bit in common, obviously,
- and Jim suggested that they meet for coffee some day. Peggy indi-
- cated that the idea sat well with her and assured him that she
- would enjoy it. The next test was soon to come. Jim excused him-
- self and told her that he enjoyed talking with her. She offered
- her phone number and bid Jim good bye. As she began walking away,
- Peggy's mind must have gone into high gear. The suggestion that
- she may never see this man again must have assaulted her aware-
- ness. She turned and Jim continued to walk.
-
- She caught his attention and indicated to him that she
- didn't even know his name. He told her that his name was Eddie
- and, she advised him that she was Peggy. She then suddenly asked
- him it he had plans for the rest of the evening. He smiled and
- indicated that he did not. Peggy then told "Eddie" that she was
- not committed to anything either and thought that it would be a
- shame to have to drink her bottle of wine all by herself. She
- couldn't believe her own ears. Did that come out of her lips?
- "Eddie" smiled and told her that it was late and she probably
- should be escorted to her home anyway. "Let's get to check out
- and I'll follow you home," he offered. She agreed with a smile
- and a shake of her head and they approached the check out
- counter. Having completed this task they headed toward their
- cars.
-
- Jim actually felt as though Peggy was a stranger. She acted
- a little differently. She was infinitely more sexy, and she moved
- in such a way as to accentuate her lovely body. Jim continued to
- imagine Peggy being with a strange man, pressing her lips to him,
- touching his strange penis and offering him all of her charms.
- Naughtiness - that was it. It was naughty. Every conceivable sex
- act invaded his mind. He couldn't remember being this aroused.
- Soon they were at "Peggy's home." She pulled into the drive and
- exited the van with packages in tow. She fumbled with her keys
- and opened the door. Jim was directly behind her, watching her
- buttocks move under the tight material. He felt it curious how
- her hands shook as she placed the key in the lock to allow them
- entrance.
-
- Once inside, Peggy told "Eddie" to make himself comfortable
- and she would be right with him. "Eddie" went to the couch and
- collapsed. He couldn't remember ever sitting on the couch. He
- generally sat in an easy chair. He really felt as if he were in
- someone else's house. He heard Peggy getting glasses and ice to
- chill the glasses. Soon she joined him in the living room,
- deposited the tray of wine and sat at the opposite end of the
- couch. Jim got a smirk on his face, and Peggy understood. She
- told him that she had never invited anyone over before, and Jim
- offered a fake frown. She then hastened to mention that she was
- married and it would probably be poorly perceived that she did
- invite him over.
-
- "Eddie" told her that if she was uncomfortable, he would
- leave. She indicated that she was uncomfortable, but she did not
- want him to leave. She found him so interesting that she wanted
- to know more about him. She wanted to know why he had accepted
- her offer to come over when he didn't even know her. Jim pulled
- out all of the stops. "I find you to be one of the most exciting
- women I have ever met and was hoping that I could get to know you
- better. I can't very well get to know you if you are sitting at
- the other end of the couch," he shared as he reached and put his
- hand on her arm. They slowly moved toward each other and their
- lips met.
-
- Her body felt new. After twenty years of marriage, he was on
- fire. He felt her body tremble as she pressed her breasts into
- his chest. His hand cupped the back of her head and pulled her
- toward him. Soon her tongue touched his lip and begged for admit-
- tance to his hot mouth. His tongue met hers and they seemed to
- melt together. Jim placed his left hand under her sweater and
- found a warm breast with its nipple plump and straining. He felt
- the weight of her flesh. He gently pinched her nipple, and she
- sighed heavily as her tongue reached farther into his mouth. His
- hand now reached down and slipped into her slacks and beneath her
- panties to cup the swell of her buttocks. Dipping into the moist
- canyon of her ass cheeks, he squeezed and felt her respond by
- placing her hand on his now gigantic cock. Suddenly she stopped
- her aggression and seemed to become concerned. Jim asked her if
- there was something wrong. "Eddie, I have to make something clear
- to you. I am married, and I love my husband very much. I have
- never done anything like this before, and I'm concerned that it's
- wrong," she said.
-
- "Do you think that Jim would be really upset with us?" he
- inquired.
-
- "Actually, it would probably be quite the contrary. Jim has
- hinted many times throughout our marriage that the thought of me
- making it with someone else would be a real turn on for him,"
- Peggy explained.
-
- "Well, I promise not to take it too serious, if you don't.
- What do you say? You tell Jim what you want to. You know him well
- enough to pick what to tell him and when," Jim urged. She smiled
- at him and placed his hand back on her soft, waiting breast.
-
- After what seemed like only seconds, Jim reached under both
- sides of Peggy's sweater and lifted it over her head. He saw the
- lovely breasts stretch upward as she raised her arms over her
- head to accommodate his efforts. Her eyes were glued to his to
- observe the appreciation on his face. His head immediately
- dropped to her juicy nipple as his hand lifted her heavy tit to
- his mouth. Again a moan escaped her lips, as her hand began work-
- ing on the zipper of his pants. Soon they were both naked.
-
- Peggy's love tunnel was wet with her own juices. She knew
- that she had never been this excited, as the cream began running
- down her legs and into the crack of her ass. In a quick motion,
- her head fell onto his thick bone and devoured it. Up and down
- she went trying to stuff every morsel of his eight inch cock into
- her throat. Her hands manipulated the hairy balls as if she were
- trying to prepare his cum for its inevitable exit. He wanted to
- slide his tongue into her swollen cunt but didn't want her to
- stop what she was doing. He just laid back and enjoyed what was
- happening. Quickly, he felt the come boiling in his heavy balls.
- He was going to ejaculate. Without a word, he withdrew his vein
- covered meat from her lips. He rearranged her on the couch and
- threw her legs back forcing his tongue into the deep, dark honey
- pot. She even tasted different. His lips began plucking at her
- now hard clit, dipping his tongue deep into her hole from time to
- time.
-
- Peggy soon let out what can only be described as a deep
- grunt. Her hips began pounding against Jim's face as she held his
- head in place. Her breasts were flopping wildly as she shame-
- lessly fucked his face with her dripping cunt. "Ohhhhhhhhhhhhhhh
- my god - Oh - Oh - Ohhhhhhhhhhhhhh," she cried. It went on and
- on. She continued to convulse as his tongue milked the cream from
- deep in her hole. He had never seen Peggy come this hard or this
- long. His face was becoming covered with her love juices and
- detached pubic hair. Soon she lay there completely spent and al-
- most unconscious. Jim went to the rest room and acquired a towel.
- He wiped his face, sat in his easy chair and continued to stroke
- his huge erection.
-
- Jim exited the chair and poured two glasses of wine. He
- moved to the couch and offered one to Peggy. She took it with
- what was clearly a weak hand. After a long sip on the cool wine,
- she offered a huge grin and told him that she hoped he didn't
- think that she was done. He returned the smile, took a sip of his
- glass and returned to his chair, stroking his heavy penis. Peggy
- quickly recovered as the sexiest look came over her face. She
- moved over to the chair and placed herself between this man's
- legs. She placed her lips over his flaccid penis, and he knew in-
- stantly that she still had wine in her mouth. The sensation was
- great. He felt the cool wine encompass his cock. Soon the wine
- was gone and only her hot quick lips remained, sliding up and
- down his shaft. He reached down and felt the weight of her heavy
- tits, bouncing as her head pounded his penis. He looked down her
- smooth back to the cleft between the cheeks of her tight ass.
- Surely, heaven was like this.
-
- Jim had the greatest urge in the world to drive his thick,
- long cock into this woman. Suddenly he rose and began to push
- Peggy over to the couch, spreading her legs as she fell backward.
- "Wait, Eddie. Would you please fuck me like a dog. I would love
- to feel your huge bone in my cunt as your thighs pound against my
- ass," she begged. Jim backed off and allowed Peggy to get on her
- knees. He looked down and saw her buttocks displayed before him;
- her gaping cunt with soaked hair and dripping from excitement. He
- took his cock in his hand and began to stroke it once again, as
- he aimed it toward her dark slit. Her breasts undulating with a
- gentle bounce, she waited to be filled with this strange cock.
-
- Jim's thick rod encountered no resistance as it parted the
- lips of her fragrant hole and slid deep into this cavern of love.
- Upon initial entry, Peggy once again began to convulse with spasm
- after spasm of orgasm. Her box engulfed Jim's pounding cock and
- squeezed it tight. He drove deeper and deeper into her belly.
- "Fuck me, fuck me harder, fuck me deeper. Drive that bone into my
- cunt, mother fucker. Fill my guts with your cream. Fuck that
- cunt, squeeze my ass; harder," she screamed.
-
- He could take it no longer. Deep within his balls he could
- feel the cream exploding for release. Bang! It erupted. The first
- convulsion, he squirted a huge load of come into her cunt. He
- then pulled his jumping rod from her hole and shot several vol-
- leys of hot juice on her ass and back. She reached back and
- started to smear the thick sticky cream over her ass and back.
- She grabbed Jim's cock and continued to milk it as she cried with
- joy.
-
- They both collapsed on the couch into one another's arms and
- fell off to sleep. Jim was the first to awaken. He went to the
- rest room, cleaned up and returned with a hot wash cloth and a
- towel for Peggy. As he nudged Peggy her eyes slowly opened. As
- soon as she was aware, Jim snapped his fingers twice, and Peggy's
- eyes closed again. Jim told her that she would soon awaken, feel-
- ing wonderful and remembering everything as though it actually
- happened. She would feel no guilt and would be proud that she
- finally obtained the courage to make love with a stranger. He
- further told her that she could feel free to tell him about her
- experience in her own good time. Peggy was awoken, freshened up,
- went to bed and fell off into a wonderful natural sleep.
-
- The next morning she was surprised to find Jim home, think-
- ing that he would be gone for another day. He told her that he
- had finished his business early and had missed her. She im-
- mediately reached for his cock and placed it in her mouth. 'Let
- the games begin,' he thought. He also let his mind wander about
- the next experience he would treat her to. He was on fire again.
-
-
- CHAPTER ELEVEN - MIND SEX
-
- Jim could feel himself becoming more interested in what
- wonders hypnosis had to offer he and Peggy and their sexual
- desires. He decided to take Peggy to a new level of sexual
- heights. He had helped Peggy experience complete hallucination of
- the senses on two different occasions. The first was to find her
- on a secluded beach masturbating, and the second was a wonderful
- massage by a great looking stranger. Now what? She had still
- never had a stranger's cock in her body. Jim decided that would
- be the next adventure. He would introduce Peggy to this ex-
- perience on Saturday night.
-
- The week seemed to drag on. It seemed as though Saturday
- would never come. Each time Jim looked at Peggy he thought about
- how exciting it would be for Peggy to give her body to a strange
- man; her lovely breasts, her round buttocks, her hot pussy.
- Strange hands on her skin; her lips on another man's penis; his
- hairy balls resting in her hands and on the soft cheeks of her
- ass. He went wild with the thought of it. And then Saturday came.
-
- They spent their evening in the same fashion as usual. A
- movie, a pizza and a bottle of wine were their entertainment. The
- movie was not bad, the pizza was different and the wine was
- great. Jim did have a hard time keeping his mind on anything
- other than sex. As they prepared to retire, Jim's apprehension
- increased. Peggy had no idea what was to take place. As Peggy
- dressed in her night clothes to get into bed, again Jim's mind
- wandered to thoughts of another man gazing on her wonderful body.
- Jim snapped his fingers twice, his regular post hypnotic suggest-
- ion that would place Peggy into a deep trance state. He watched
- her eyes close. A warm smile appeared on her lips, and she melted
- into a deep sleep.
-
- Jim continued to bring Peggy deeper and deeper into her
- trance. He suggested to her that upon reaching her deepest trance
- state she would begin to feel very sexy. He continued along these
- lines for quite some time until he could perceive Peggy actually
- beginning to squirm. She was hot and wanted fucked. Jim told her
- that he would soon wake her and when she awoke, she would find
- herself all alone and extremely horny. She would dress completely
- in a tight fitting outfit, get in the car and go to the all-night
- grocery store.
-
- When she reached the store, she would complete the shopping
- that she was going to do the next day. While at the grocery
- store, she would meet a stranger with a green ribbon in the zip-
- per of his coat. As soon as she identified the green ribbon, the
- man wearing the ribbon would be the most exciting man she had
- ever seen. She would have trouble taking her eyes off of him.
- This would be the man she always wanted to make love to.
-
- Jim went on to explain that she would be attracted to this
- man so much, because she may never have the chance to see him
- again. He further told her not to concern herself with Jim be-
- cause he would be out of town on business for two days. Before he
- woke Peggy up he decided to give her one more post hypnotic sug-
- gestion. That suggestion took the form of the length of each of
- her orgasms. He would pyramid them. He told her that the inten-
- sity of her climax would be double what she ever experienced
- before.
-
- After assuring her that she would remember nothing about
- being in a trance, Jim woke Peggy up. Now would follow the first
- test. Would she awaken, go about the business of getting ready
- for the grocery store and not be able to see Jim. He waited with
- a great deal of interest as he watched Peggy get ready to go to
- the store. He sat in a chair in the corner of the master bedroom
- silently.
-
- Peggy got up from the bed and went into the bathroom off the
- bedroom without acknowledging Jim's presence. He never took his
- eyes off Peggy as she began to pin her hair up to take a shower.
- Her hair secure, she removed her night clothes, and Jim's blood
- began to race. His thick penis began to grow as he viewed her
- lovely bouncing breasts and the cleave of her ass cheeks. Her
- soft pubic hair was brought into view as she turned. She stopped
- in front of the mirror and began to admire herself.
-
- Her hands reached up and gently cupped her ample breasts.
- Peggy pointed the nipples at the mirror and a smile crept over
- her lips. As the thumb and forefinger of each hand pinched the
- generous pink nipples of each mound of flesh her eyes rolled up
- and closed. Maintaining her grasp on one of the nipples, she al-
- lowed her other hand to dip down to her bush. Jim had never seen
- Peggy alone and unaware of a spectator. He now understood what a
- voyeur must feel like. His hard rod stretched to its maximum
- length.
-
- Peggy began to furiously rub her clit and manipulate her
- breasts. Jim heard a soft moan and Peggy turned from the mirror
- to head for the shower. Jim's excitement continued as Peggy en-
- tered the hot stream of the shower and soaped every inch of her
- hot body. She toweled herself off and moved toward the dressing
- table. As she bent over to open a drawer, her buttocks were of-
- fered to his intense view; so pink and round and tight. Suddenly
- she removed a tight kelley green pair of slacks and tossed them
- on the bed next to the dressing table.
-
- Next she removed a white knit top and placed it next to the
- slacks. Peggy entered her undies drawer and withdrew a sexy pair
- of panties. As she reached down for the panties, Jim could see
- her heavy breasts swing down and undulate as if they had a life
- of their own.
-
- Peggy stepped into the panties and pulled them up over her
- tight buttocks. She quickly donned her slacks and pulled the top
- on without a bra. Admiring herself in the mirror, her hands went
- to her breasts, and she felt the weight in her hands. Satisfied
- that her body would look its best in this outfit, she reached for
- a comb. She combed her hair and reached for her make-up case to
- place the final touches on this portrait. Uncontrollably, seminal
- fluid began to seep out of Jim's straining cock. He began think-
- ing about old baseball games to keep himself from blowing his en-
- tire wad. Peggy left the room and quickly grabbed her coat and
- keys. She was out of the door before Jim could follow her through
- the house.
-
- Jim quickly got his essentials and began looking for his
- keys. He couldn't find his god-damned keys. His mind was reeling.
- Suddenly he remembered that he had left them in his overcoat,
- retrieved them and headed for the garage. He was shaking with an-
- ticipation as he grabbed his jacket and reached into the pocket
- for his green ribbon. His wife was off to the grocery store and
- would likely find more that ground chuck upon completion of her
- mission. He headed toward the grocery store with his cock still
- heavy with anticipation.
-
- Jim's heart jumped once again as he pulled into the parking
- lot and saw Peggy's van parked there. Still shaking slightly, he
- exited the car and began his journey into the store. On his way,
- he recovered a shopping cart in the parking lot and pushed it
- toward the automatic doors. He thought how humorous it must be
- that some of the observers in the area were likely thinking that
- he was doing his part to bring one of the carts back to the
- store. Actually, he was trying to hide his substantial hard on.
- As he entered the store, his eyes began to search for Peggy. His
- gaze then went to the zipper of his jacket to assure himself that
- his ribbon was in place. It was. Where would she go first? He
- would try the dairy isle. True to habit, Peggy was at the dairy
- section viewing the offerings. Jim just stood back and watched.
- She was a good shopper, moving through the isles quickly captur-
- ing all of those necessities that she was so used to buying.
-
- It wasn't busy in the store. There were only several shop-
- pers there at the time. Many of them appeared to be single men
- struggling through this chore. It didn't take Jim long to observe
- that Peggy had removed her coat and hung it over the back of the
- cart. Soon, it became apparent that the men in the store were
- watching her fine ass as it passed. When she reached for an item,
- her breasts would often swing against the material of her top and
- thrill the onlookers. Jim's cock remained hard and ready. He
- decided that it was about time he allowed Peggy to notice him. He
- traveled the reverse way of the traffic pattern that Peggy had
- established so he could face her in his travels. As he rounded
- the soup section, there she was.
-
- Peggy was being followed casually by two men, one behind the
- other. At this point they were merely pretending to shop. It was
- obvious that they were benefiting from the view of her great
- body. This excited Jim even more. Soon Peggy's casual gaze met
- Jim. She looked away and then her head snapped back to rivet on
- the green ribbon of his jacket. She immediately began to blush.
- She quickly looked away and began sneaking peeks at this
- "stranger." As she turned the corner, Jim could see that she was
- trying to see more of him.
-
- Again they appeared in the same isle, the wine section,
- going in their respective directions. Peggy stopped to view the
- selection, Jim continued his slow walk toward her. Jim knew Peggy
- well enough to know that she would probably not make the first
- move. It was his responsibility. As he closed in, he stopped and
- asked her if she liked the brand of wine she held in her hand.
- She indicated that she liked to try different brands and types,
- and he indicated that he did also. As their conversation
- developed, she became more talkative. They began to walk in the
- same direction, talking about many of their interests. Her eyes
- periodically moved to his bulge. Her nose became filled with his
- scent. She was getting aroused just walking next to him.
-
- They found that they had quite a bit in common, obviously,
- and Jim suggested that they meet for coffee some day. Peggy indi-
- cated that the idea sat well with her and assured him that she
- would enjoy it. The next test was soon to come. Jim excused him-
- self and told her that he enjoyed talking with her. She offered
- her phone number and bid Jim good bye. As she began walking away,
- Peggy's mind must have gone into high gear. The suggestion that
- she may never see this man again must have assaulted her aware-
- ness. She turned and Jim continued to walk.
-
- She caught his attention and indicated to him that she
- didn't even know his name. He told her that his name was Eddie
- and, she advised him that she was Peggy. She then suddenly asked
- him it he had plans for the rest of the evening. He smiled and
- indicated that he did not. Peggy then told "Eddie" that she was
- not committed to anything either and thought that it would be a
- shame to have to drink her bottle of wine all by herself. She
- couldn't believe her own ears. Did that come out of her lips?
- "Eddie" smiled and told her that it was late and she probably
- should be escorted to her home anyway. "Let's get to check out
- and I'll follow you home," he offered. She agreed with a smile
- and a shake of her head and they approached the check out
- counter. Having completed this task they headed toward their
- cars.
-
- Jim actually felt as though Peggy was a stranger. She acted
- a little differently. She was infinitely more sexy, and she moved
- in such a way as to accentuate her lovely body. Jim continued to
- imagine Peggy being with a strange man, pressing her lips to him,
- touching his strange penis and offering him all of her charms.
- Naughtiness - that was it. It was naughty. Every conceivable sex
- act invaded his mind. He couldn't remember being this aroused.
- Soon they were at "Peggy's home." She pulled into the drive and
- exited the van with packages in tow. She fumbled with her keys
- and opened the door. Jim was directly behind her, watching her
- buttocks move under the tight material. He felt it curious how
- her hands shook as she placed the key in the lock to allow them
- entrance.
-
- Once inside, Peggy told "Eddie" to make himself comfortable
- and she would be right with him. "Eddie" went to the couch and
- collapsed. He couldn't remember ever sitting on the couch. He
- generally sat in an easy chair. He really felt as if he were in
- someone else's house. He heard Peggy getting glasses and ice to
- chill the glasses. Soon she joined him in the living room,
- deposited the tray of wine and sat at the opposite end of the
- couch. Jim got a smirk on his face, and Peggy understood. She
- told him that she had never invited anyone over before, and Jim
- offered a fake frown. She then hastened to mention that she was
- married and it would probably be poorly perceived that she did
- invite him over.
-
- "Eddie" told her that if she was uncomfortable, he would
- leave. She indicated that she was uncomfortable, but she did not
- want him to leave. She found him so interesting that she wanted
- to know more about him. She wanted to know why he had accepted
- her offer to come over when he didn't even know her. Jim pulled
- out all of the stops. "I find you to be one of the most exciting
- women I have ever met and was hoping that I could get to know you
- better. I can't very well get to know you if you are sitting at
- the other end of the couch," he shared as he reached and put his
- hand on her arm. They slowly moved toward each other and their
- lips met.
-
- Her body felt new. After twenty years of marriage, he was on
- fire. He felt her body tremble as she pressed her breasts into
- his chest. His hand cupped the back of her head and pulled her
- toward him. Soon her tongue touched his lip and begged for admit-
- tance to his hot mouth. His tongue met hers and they seemed to
- melt together. Jim placed his left hand under her sweater and
- found a warm breast with its nipple plump and straining. He felt
- the weight of her flesh. He gently pinched her nipple, and she
- sighed heavily as her tongue reached farther into his mouth. His
- hand now reached down and slipped into her slacks and beneath her
- panties to cup the swell of her buttocks. Dipping into the moist
- canyon of her ass cheeks, he squeezed and felt her respond by
- placing her hand on his now gigantic cock. Suddenly she stopped
- her aggression and seemed to become concerned. Jim asked her if
- there was something wrong. "Eddie, I have to make something clear
- to you. I am married, and I love my husband very much. I have
- never done anything like this before, and I'm concerned that it's
- wrong," she said.
-
- "Do you think that Jim would be really upset with us?" he
- inquired.
-
- "Actually, it would probably be quite the contrary. Jim has
- hinted many times throughout our marriage that the thought of me
- making it with someone else would be a real turn on for him,"
- Peggy explained.
-
- "Well, I promise not to take it too serious, if you don't.
- What do you say? You tell Jim what you want to. You know him well
- enough to pick what to tell him and when," Jim urged. She smiled
- at him and placed his hand back on her soft, waiting breast.
-
- After what seemed like only seconds, Jim reached under both
- sides of Peggy's sweater and lifted it over her head. He saw the
- lovely breasts stretch upward as she raised her arms over her
- head to accommodate his efforts. Her eyes were glued to his to
- observe the appreciation on his face. His head immediately
- dropped to her juicy nipple as his hand lifted her heavy tit to
- his mouth. Again a moan escaped her lips, as her hand began work-
- ing on the zipper of his pants. Soon they were both naked.
-
- Peggy's love tunnel was wet with her own juices. She knew
- that she had never been this excited, as the cream began running
- down her legs and into the crack of her ass. In a quick motion,
- her head fell onto his thick bone and devoured it. Up and down
- she went trying to stuff every morsel of his eight inch cock into
- her throat. Her hands manipulated the hairy balls as if she were
- trying to prepare his cum for its inevitable exit. He wanted to
- slide his tongue into her swollen cunt but didn't want her to
- stop what she was doing. He just laid back and enjoyed what was
- happening. Quickly, he felt the come boiling in his heavy balls.
- He was going to ejaculate. Without a word, he withdrew his vein
- covered meat from her lips. He rearranged her on the couch and
- threw her legs back forcing his tongue into the deep, dark honey
- pot. She even tasted different. His lips began plucking at her
- now hard clit, dipping his tongue deep into her hole from time to
- time.
-
- Peggy soon let out what can only be described as a deep
- grunt. Her hips began pounding against Jim's face as she held his
- head in place. Her breasts were flopping wildly as she shame-
- lessly fucked his face with her dripping cunt. "Ohhhhhhhhhhhhhhh
- my god - Oh - Oh - Ohhhhhhhhhhhhhh," she cried. It went on and
- on. She continued to convulse as his tongue milked the cream from
- deep in her hole. He had never seen Peggy come this hard or this
- long. His face was becoming covered with her love juices and
- detached pubic hair. Soon she lay there completely spent and al-
- most unconscious. Jim went to the rest room and acquired a towel.
- He wiped his face, sat in his easy chair and continued to stroke
- his huge erection.
-
- Jim exited the chair and poured two glasses of wine. He
- moved to the couch and offered one to Peggy. She took it with
- what was clearly a weak hand. After a long sip on the cool wine,
- she offered a huge grin and told him that she hoped he didn't
- think that she was done. He returned the smile, took a sip of his
- glass and returned to his chair, stroking his heavy penis. Peggy
- quickly recovered as the sexiest look came over her face. She
- moved over to the chair and placed herself between this man's
- legs. She placed her lips over his flaccid penis, and he knew in-
- stantly that she still had wine in her mouth. The sensation was
- great. He felt the cool wine encompass his cock. Soon the wine
- was gone and only her hot quick lips remained, sliding up and
- down his shaft. He reached down and felt the weight of her heavy
- tits, bouncing as her head pounded his penis. He looked down her
- smooth back to the cleft between the cheeks of her tight ass.
- Surely, heaven was like this.
-
- Jim had the greatest urge in the world to drive his thick,
- long cock into this woman. Suddenly he rose and began to push
- Peggy over to the couch, spreading her legs as she fell backward.
- "Wait, Eddie. Would you please fuck me like a dog. I would love
- to feel your huge bone in my cunt as your thighs pound against my
- ass," she begged. Jim backed off and allowed Peggy to get on her
- knees. He looked down and saw her buttocks displayed before him;
- her gaping cunt with soaked hair and dripping from excitement. He
- took his cock in his hand and began to stroke it once again, as
- he aimed it toward her dark slit. Her breasts undulating with a
- gentle bounce, she waited to be filled with this strange cock.
-
- Jim's thick rod encountered no resistance as it parted the
- lips of her fragrant hole and slid deep into this cavern of love.
- Upon initial entry, Peggy once again began to convulse with spasm
- after spasm of orgasm. Her box engulfed Jim's pounding cock and
- squeezed it tight. He drove deeper and deeper into her belly.
- "Fuck me, fuck me harder, fuck me deeper. Drive that bone into my
- cunt, mother fucker. Fill my guts with your cream. Fuck that
- cunt, squeeze my ass; harder," she screamed.
-
- He could take it no longer. Deep within his balls he could
- feel the cream exploding for release. Bang! It erupted. The first
- convulsion, he squirted a huge load of come into her cunt. He
- then pulled his jumping rod from her hole and shot several vol-
- leys of hot juice on her ass and back. She reached back and
- started to smear the thick sticky cream over her ass and back.
- She grabbed Jim's cock and continued to milk it as she cried with
- joy.
-
- They both collapsed on the couch into one another's arms and
- fell off to sleep. Jim was the first to awaken. He went to the
- rest room, cleaned up and returned with a hot wash cloth and a
- towel for Peggy. As he nudged Peggy her eyes slowly opened. As
- soon as she was aware, Jim snapped his fingers twice, and Peggy's
- eyes closed again. Jim told her that she would soon awaken, feel-
- ing wonderful and remembering everything as though it actually
- happened. She would feel no guilt and would be proud that she
- finally obtained the courage to make love with a stranger. He
- further told her that she could feel free to tell him about her
- experience in her own good time. Peggy was awoken, freshened up,
- went to bed and fell off into a wonderful natural sleep.
-
- The next morning she was surprised to find Jim home, think-
- ing that he would be gone for another day. He told her that he
- had finished his business early and had missed her. She im-
- mediately reached for his cock and placed it in her mouth. 'Let
- the games begin,' he thought. He also let his mind wander about
- the next experience he would treat her to. He was on fire again.
-
-
- CHAPTER TWELVE - MIND SEX
-
- Jim sat in the office as his mind began to settle down from
- the day's activity. His pushed back from the desk, leaned back in
- his chair, placed his hands behind his head and began to think
- about the last hypnosex experience with Peggy, his wife. As his
- thoughts began to touch those moments when his wife was making
- love with another man, his cock started to grow. With eyes closed
- his mind began painting pictures of Peggy parting her soaked
- pussy so that "Eddie" could bury his straining cock. He was con-
- vinced that it was time for another experiment. He would prepare
- for another mind altering experience.
-
- The ride home was a blur. His mind focused on the events
- that he would create for his wife's enjoyment. Up until this
- point she had never shared with Jim that she had experienced
- "another man." He pulled into the drive and pushed the button to
- open the garage. Peggy was in the kitchen as he entered. She
- smiled, welcomed him home and offered her lovely lips to him.
- Peggy continued her efforts to complete dinner as Jim went into
- the bedroom to change for dinner. As he undressed, he was happy
- to see that the thoughts he was having on the way home nicely af-
- fected the heaviness and length of his penis. He pulled it out
- and began stroking it. He could feel his nipples tingling at the
- thought of a new experience for Peggy. Jim dressed and made his
- way out of the bedroom.
-
- Jim entered the dining room and walked up behind Peggy plac-
- ing his extended rod against the crack of her ass. He reached up
- under her sweat shirt and cupped her bra-less breasts. Her
- nipples stabbed his respective palms, and his cock jumped. She
- pushed back slightly and indicated that she expected some of
- "that" later and giggled. He assured her that she would be
- pleasantly surprised. "What does that mean?" she inquired.
-
- "You'll see sweetheart. I want to see the look on your face
- when you get it, so I won't spoil it now," he added. Jim was
- trying to feel Peggy out about the last experience she had, to
- determine whether he was moving too fast and whether it turned
- her on as much as it did him.
-
- "Tell me honey; with the exception of Marty, your brother's
- friend, have you ever entertained any thoughts about making it
- with another man?" Jim inquired after they had finished most of
- their meal.
-
- "You really do want me to fuck someone else, don't you? You
- know Jim, I don't really know how to take you sometimes. I get
- concerned that if I do experience another man you will find that
- you don't really want that. I also get concerned that you will
- think I am a slut", Peggy responded.
-
- "I told you before honey, that I would get a little jealous,
- but it would be a great turn on for me. I know you love me, and a
- piece of ass wouldn't change that. I have more faith in our
- relationship after twenty years of marriage to think that I would
- care less for you. It's actually my request. Why would I get
- angry with you. Like I told you before; if you ever want to or
- get the chance to have a strange cock in you, I would love it",
- Jim assured her.
-
- "OK, I'll take a chance. I did get fucked Jim. It was great,
- and I wanted to tell you about it, but I was afraid to, because I
- didn't want to upset you", she began to ramble. She got up from
- the table and turned away from Jim as she finished her sentence.
- Jim could feel the blood begin to flow in his loins, but he was a
- little concerned about Peggy.
-
- "Oh honey, you don't have to worry about that. You've said
- it. I know it now, and I'm happy for you," Jim said as he ap-
- proached her from behind. He grabbed her arms and slowly turned
- her to face him. Jim looked into her eyes, smiled and kissed her.
-
- "Are you sure that you're not mad?" she asked. She was trem-
- bling slightly as she nestled into his strong arms.
-
- "No honey, I promise that not only am I not angry, I am very
- turned on by it. Would you feel comfortable telling me about it?"
- he asked.
-
- "Give me a minute while I think of where to begin. I'll put
- on some coffee," She said. Jim watched her move about the dining
- room. His blood was beginning to boil as he saw her buttocks move
- under her tight sweat pants and her breasts sway under her shirt.
- He began to remember how Peggy reacted to what she thought was a
- stranger. He recalled how powerful her orgasms were. He could see
- "Eddie's" hands on her breasts, his lips on her nipples and his
- thick cock ramming her hole.
-
- Peggy put a cup of coffee in front of Jim and began speaking
- quietly, "I really don't know what got into me. It was so out of
- character. I went to the store to pick up a few things while you
- were out of town. I entered the store and really became conscious
- of several men in the place. It seemed like they were all looking
- at me. I started feeling really sexy. After a short time, I ran
- into one man that really seemed to turn me on. I don't know what
- it was about him. I just began thinking about how it would be to
- touch him, have him touch me and I wanted to see his body. I'm
- never like that. We talked and he really seemed to be too good to
- be true. He was intelligent, witty and not pushy. I almost let
- him walk out of the store, and then something came over me. I
- decided that if I could get this guy to come home with me I
- would. I kept hearing your voice in the back of my head telling
- me that you wouldn't mind, and it would turn you on. I was
- shocked when he agreed to come over for some wine. You look like
- you really enjoy hearing this."
-
- Jim stood up, unzipped his trousers and displayed his im-
- mense cock. She had never seen it this big. It's head was swollen
- and shiny. It looked like a huge tower. Jim said, "this should
- tell you how I feel about it." She went on to explain, in detail,
- what occurred as Jim stroked his cock. Peggy became so horny
- telling Jim about it, that she put her hand between her legs,
- pressed against her clit and swayed back and forth as she
- finished the story. Jim reminded her that he thought it was won-
- derful that she was able to have this new experience and en-
- couraged her to feel free to express herself in the future. Both
- rose and moved toward one another in the dining room. They fell
- into each others arms and joined in a deep kiss. Jim's hands were
- all over Peggy. She began pumping against his leg as he continued
- to whisper sexy things in her ear about the man she had made love
- with. They decided that they would go into bed.
-
- As they reached the bed, Peggy crawled up pulling Jim after
- her. As her head hit the pillow, Jim snapped his fingers twice.
- Peggy's smile began to fade and her eyes closed, as she seemed to
- melt into the bed. She became completely relaxed and fell into a
- deep sleep. Jim did what he could to make her more comfortable.
- He adjusted the pillow, straightened her legs and told her that
- she would fall deeper asleep than she ever had. She was again
- ready to accept any suggestions that Jim would offer.
-
- "When you awaken, I will be out of town again. You will
- begin to feel very sexy and horny. You will masturbate and enjoy
- a beautiful climax, but it won't seem to be enough. You will want
- to fill your love hole with a thick, long, glistening penis. All
- you will be able to think of is this long cock. You can almost
- taste it now. You will want to hold someone's heavy, hairy balls
- in your hand. You will feel your swollen nipples tingle in an-
- ticipation. Your breasts and buttocks will long to be held. You
- are beginning to feel the need increase now.
-
- After you masturbate, you will dress in a sexy outfit and go
- out to a single's bar to see if there is anyone there who inter-
- ests you. When you enter, I will be there but you will not be
- able to see me. You will not notice me in any way. You will then
- sit at the bar by yourself and order a glass of wine. Several men
- may come up to you, but you will all but ignore them. If they ask
- you any questions, you will coldly tell them that you are waiting
- for a friend. If a man comes up to you and you hear the words
- 'Green Ribbon,' you will become interested in this man. He will
- be very similar in appearance to the man that you met in the
- grocery store. You will not want this man to get away. You will
- want to get to know him better. If you hear the word
- 'Catastrophe," you will explain to the stranger that although you
- think he is nice, you are a married woman and must get home. If
- you are comfortable with this man, you will feel free to invite
- him to your house for drinks. If everything feels right and you
- decide to make love, you will do so in the bedroom." Jim was sure
- that in this fashion, he could protect her from unwholesome
- types, someone who would turn sour during their conversation and
- direct her in terms of who she would be leaving with. The entire
- time that Peggy spent in the trance state, Jim's cock was hard
- and anxious to spill. He controlled it, because he wanted to
- remain hot to see what the rest of the evening held. He told
- Peggy to remain in the trance state until he woke her.
-
- Jim went to the basement and disconnected the cable from the
- cable service and reconnected it to a VCR in the recreation room.
- He then connected the wire from the TV to a video camera that sat
- on top of a high dresser. After a little adjusting of the camera,
- her returned to the basement to see that he would have a ring-
- side seat for anything that would occur in the bedroom. Jim
- returned to the bedroom to awaken Peggy. She slowly became con-
- scious. Jim sat in the chair in the corner of the room and
- watched.
-
- Peggy began to squirm on the bed. Her hands went under her
- shirt and grabbed her bra-less breasts. She began to shake them
- and pinch at the nipples. Soon she removed it utterly and con-
- tinued to deeply massage her breasts. This was something that Jim
- rarely saw. She slipped her hand into her pants as her head bent
- back into the pillow. Shortly, in one motion, Peggy slipped her
- thumbs into the waistband of her sweats and slid them and her
- panties down her hips and off. Her hand went immediately to her
- slit and began rubbing her clit furiously. Breasts bouncing and
- hand gyrating in her quim, Peggy convulsed into marvelous orgasm.
- Her eyes squeezed tightly shut, and her mouth opened, gasping for
- air.
-
- Jim was forced to spill his cream as he watched Peggy mas-
- turbate. He continued to stroke his weapon as he watched Peggy
- get up from the bed and move toward the shower. He could never
- get enough of the sight of her lovely buttocks as they rolled
- with each step. Jim wished that the whole world could see and ap-
- preciate this beautiful view. Peggy pinned up her long brown hair
- and stepped into the shower.
-
- Good use of the time was made by Jim as he waited for Peggy
- to dress. He prepared himself in the main bath room and double
- checked the video equipment. He could feel himself begin to
- shiver as he saw Peggy walk across the bed room while she
- dressed. Preparations having been made, Jim went out to his car,
- pulled it down the street and waited for Peggy to exit the house.
- He didn't have to wait long, as soon he saw Peggy's car pulling
- out of the driveway and heading down the street. He was directly
- behind her. She drove down the major highway for about four miles
- and turned into a local single's lounge. He crawled slowly into
- the lot and turned out his lights. Jim watched her confidently
- walk from the car to the lounge. He had never remembered her
- holding her head so self-confidently.
-
- As she disappeared inside the lounge, Jim exited his car and
- followed her. When he entered, he saw her sitting at the bar. She
- looked great and already Jim observed a few of the men looking
- her over. He took a position about three stools away from hers
- and ordered a drink. There was no one in the bar that he recog-
- nized. He had a little concern about that previous to entering
- the place as he lived so closely. Soon one of the patrons saun-
- tered over to her and asked her something. Jim couldn't quite
- hear what it was. She turned to him and said something, and he
- returned to his seat. This happened on two other occasions with
- the same result. Suddenly, a rather tall, nice looking man in his
- mid-thirties walked into the lounge and his eyes traveled over
- the bar. When he saw Peggy, his eyes seemed to light up. He began
- walking in the direction of her bar stool. He sat directly next
- to Peggy but said nothing. Jim did feel comfortable with this
- man. He felt confident that Peggy would enjoy him.
-
- "Green ribbon," issued from Jim's lips. Peggy seemed to
- relax when she heard these words and crossed her shapely legs.
- Soon the man next to her said something to her, and Jim observed
- her turn toward the man and acknowledge him followed by a bit of
- a chuckle. Jim began to get excited. It wasn't long before he
- noticed the man getting up to pull Peggy's chair out. They walked
- together toward the dance floor and glided into each other's
- arms. It was a slow dance and Peggy's body was pressed against
- this stranger. Jim's excitement continued to grow as he saw the
- man's hand periodically dip down and touch Peggy's buttocks. He
- wondered what must have been going through the stranger's mind as
- Peggy's lovely tits were pressed against his chest. They danced
- closer and closer as the minutes went by. Finally, they returned
- to the bar and ordered another drink. Jim followed their lead and
- ordered another.
-
- Jim watched them dance two times more and felt that this
- would be a hot experience for all three of them. He wondered what
- they must be talking about. Once again the stranger and Peggy
- began to get up. This time it was not to dance but rather to
- leave. The stranger held Peggy's coat while she slipped into it,
- and Jim watched as the stranger's hands lingered on the lapels as
- they covered Peggy's ample breasts. Out the door they went fol-
- lowed by Jim. Jim got to his car first, as his was closer to the
- door. He was torn between sitting to see if they would neck in
- the car or rushing home to prepare himself for the show he hoped
- to have. He elected the latter and sped out of the parking lot
- toward home.
-
- As soon as Jim reached home, he parked the car and slipped
- into the house. Down the stairs he went and locked the door to
- the recreation room. He turned on the VCR and the monitor and
- again began to shake with anticipation. The moments seemed to be
- hours. He sat with frustration creeping into his bones when sud-
- denly he heard a car in the drive. Peggy and the stranger wasted
- no time in getting into the house. Jim could faintly hear the
- sounds of glasses and a wine cork being extracted with a pop. He
- sat and watched with anticipation. Nothing appeared on the
- monitor. He wished that he had the foresight to set one up in the
- living room.
-
- When Jim was just about to think that nothing would happen,
- he saw Peggy enter the bedroom. She walked over to the clothes
- tree and immediately removed her outfit. Jim's heart jumped as he
- saw her shed her bra and panties. She reached into a drawer of
- the dresser and removed a little lavender teddy with matching
- panties. His cock jumped to attention as he watched her pull the
- panties up over the balls of her buttocks and slide the teddy
- over her head. She smoothed her hair, ran a comb through it and
- admired herself in the mirror. This also excited Jim. She was
- primping. He had never really seen this side of her. He felt like
- a voyeur, and he loved it. Soon Peggy exited the room.
-
- Jim sat impatiently waiting for Peggy and the stranger to
- return to the bedroom. It wasn't long. Now he could hear them.
- The stranger's name was Jeff, and he followed Peggy over to the
- area of the bed. Jim switched on the VCR. Their hands were all
- over one another. Peggy's hands dropped to Jeff's trousers and
- began working on the zipper. Suddenly, she dropped to her knees,
- and Jim could see her free Jeff's huge cock. Immediately, she
- opened her mouth and engulfed his straining penis. Jim almost
- came in his pants. He took his own cock out and began to stroke
- it in long slow movements. He could see his wife's lips cover
- this huge cock. Jim wondered if this is how it looked when she
- sucked his manhood. Peggy helped Jeff as he shed the rest of his
- clothes. Jeff's cock jumped up and down as he moved over the a
- chair to set his clothes down. Jim could see Jeff's heavy balls
- bouncing with his large penis stretching heavenward. Peggy's
- hands returned to his balls and her mouth to the head of his
- cock.
-
- Peggy pulled Jeff over to the bed and they collapsed in one
- another's arms. Only moments went by and Peggy's teddy and
- panties were tossed to the floor. Her hands clawed Jeff's tight
- buttocks and continued to return to his thick member. Jim went
- wild as he watched Jeff cup the cheeks of Peggy's tight ass
- cheeks and squeeze them. Jeff's hand dipped into the warm moist
- cleft between Peggy's buttocks and down to her hot hole. The
- stranger's head searched for and found her beautiful nipples and
- began to suck hard. Jim could hear Peggy say, "fuck me, I need
- fucked, I need fucked now Jeff. Put your big cock in my slippery
- pussy and fuck my brains out. Yes that's it, bite my nipples as
- you drive that big bone in my hot cunt hole." Jim was going wild.
- He couldn't take it. His cock began to erupt in huge gobs of jism
- into the palm of his hand. He continued to stoke his cock as her
- heard the lovely horny screams of Peggy and Jeff's deep grunts as
- they collapsed together on the bed. What a great climax! The next
- was sure to be better.
-
- The next thing that Jim wanted to orchestrate was being in
- the room and participating in Peggy's next adventure. But surely
- that should be a story in itself.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER THIRTEEN - MIND SEX
-
- It was a quiet evening in the den as Jim heard the clock
- strike seven. Has hands moved effortlessly over the keyboard of
- the computer, writing a letter to a computer friend in Baltimore.
- The letter had served the purpose of turning him on as he shared
- some rather sensual thoughts. Peggy was washing her hair, and
- music was playing softly on the compact disc player.
-
- Having finished his thoughts, his mind turned to the sight
- of Jeff's long wet shaft driving in Peggy's dripping love tunnel.
- That had to be one of the hottest times he had ever experienced.
- It was the first time that Peggy had ever had a strange cock in-
- side her body. Jim closed his eyes and remembered the sight of
- Jeff's hands on her well rounded buttocks. He could see his lips
- on Peggy's nipples; his teeth slightly and tenderly biting the
- rock-hard pink tips. Jeff's huge hairy balls resting in Peggy's
- hands. Her perfectly shaped lips spreading to admit the bulbous
- head of Jeff's straining cock. The thought that drove him the
- wildest was when Peggy was on her hands and knees. Jeff came up
- behind her with cock in hand and slipped it into Peggy's dripping
- cunt. Her lovely breasts were dangling and swaying. Jeff reached
- around and filled his hands with tit flesh as he drove his thick
- rod deep inside Peggy's hole. Jim almost had a climax just think-
- ing about it. He had to create yet another memory and wasn't
- quite sure how he would do it.
-
- He had a good friend that always teased Peggy about how
- lovely her body was. Tony often followed Peggy through the house
- with his eyes when he came over. Peggy seemed to enjoy Tony's
- eyes on her body. A few times when they were in close proximity,
- Jim had noticed that Tony had "accidentally" touched Peggy. One
- time, when Tony was helping her lift a chair to move it, Jim was
- sure he noticed Tony's hands brush up against Peggy's ample
- breasts and linger a little longer than was necessary. Yet
- another time, when they had gone fishing together, Tony came up
- behind Peggy and seemed to press himself into her fanny to
- demonstrate how to cast the line. Peggy didn't seem to pull away
- and it was obvious that Tony wanted his cock in her. From time to
- time their eyes would seemed locked in silent desire. Jim had
- even kidded Peggy about how Tony would die to have his hands on
- her naked flesh. It was apparent that Peggy had become excited at
- the prospect.
-
- He was somewhat concerned what Tony, or for that matter,
- Peggy would think if he simply suggested that Tony fuck her. No.
- That just wouldn't do. He had to find another way. He wanted Tony
- to have the benefit of Peggy's lovely body, but he didn't want
- Tony to know just yet. He and Tony had previously cavorted
- together. They had previously enjoyed the same woman or women
- together. How would it be if he told Tony that he found this
- great woman, she was a real fox and she fucked like a mink. Would
- Tony be interested in meeting her with Jim at a motel. It might
- work.
-
- Jim would have to shroud the evening in mystery. The lights
- would be subdued. Peggy could even wear some kind of a fancy
- mask. If she wore her hair differently than she usually did, Tony
- would never suspect until it was too late that their lovely sex
- kitten was Peggy. The decision was made. Jim was convinced that
- she was ready. He would hypnotize Peggy and give her a post hyp-
- notic suggestion that she was the most lovely sex slave in the
- world. She would assume the role of a high priced call girl. He
- would send her to the motel to check in and prepare for her two
- lovers. He and Tony would arrive and suck and fuck to their
- hearts content.
-
-
- Now the task was to prepare Tony. They sat at the downtown
- cafe that they usually frequented after work. Here they often met
- with and got to know several women. Jim asked Tony if he had
- recently got any new pussy. Tony indicated that it had been a
- couple of months, and he was ready to fuck a snake if Jim would
- hold it down. "Listen Tony, what would you say if I told you that
- I ran into this great lady. She is about 5'3", 115 pounds, light
- brown hair, lovely heavy titties, beautiful pink nipples, has a
- cute little waist, with an absolutely wonderful ass and a great
- set of legs. Not only that, but she wants to fuck both of us.
-
- "Get out of here. Where? Who do I have to kill?" Tony
- humorously inquired. Jim could see the interest in his sex-crazed
- buddy. Tony was a nice looking guy, and the thought of him enjoy-
- ing Peggy's goodies was beginning to drive him nuts.
-
- "I'm serious. I talked with this lady, she is about forty
- years old, and she said that she would love to take us both on.
- Does forty years old bother you," Jim asked.
-
- "Hell no. Many ladies don't even get good until they're
- about thirty or so. They have more experience for the most part.
- The best piece of ass I ever had was thirty-eight. I'm game. When
- do we meet this princess?" Tony panted.
-
- Jim informed Tony that he had tentatively set them up for
- Friday night at about eight o'clock. He further added that she
- would meet them at a motel. They were supposed to bring a bottle
- of wine and their cocks. Jim when on to say that she was a little
- shy and got a kick out of wearing masks and sexy clothes. Tony's
- eyes were bulging as he listened with lust. The trap was
- set.Thursday evening, as Jim was preparing for bed, he decided to
- put Peggy into a trance and give her the necessary post-hypnotic
- suggestions. As always, he snapped his fingers twice, and Peggy
- relaxed into a deep hypnotic sleep. He brought her deeper and
- deeper into her trance. He asked her several questions about pre-
- vious orchestrated fantasies as his eight inch cock began to
- grow. He loved hearing from her lips how she had enjoyed the at-
- tentions of other lovers. He could see her breasts swell as she
- related her deepest feelings. The soft lips of her vagina filled
- with lust blood at the thought of her sexual escapades. He could
- see her beginning to rub her legs together as her excitement
- grew. Jim asked her if she would like to make love with two men.
- Peggy responded by telling Jim how it would really excite her to
- have his cock in her mouth as a stranger filled her pussy with
- his long pole.
-
- Jim directed Peggy to clear her mind of all thoughts. He
- then advised her that on the following night at six o'clock she
- would become tired, go into the bed room and lay down on the bed.
- She would begin thinking of her previous adventures, become ex-
- tremely aroused. She would close her eyes and again fall into a
- deep trance. She would sleep for about five minutes. When she
- awoke, she would walk over to the mirror and when she looked into
- the mirror, she would see the most attractive call girl in the
- world. Her only desire was to service her customers to the best
- of her ability. She would get cleaned up, go to the motel, obtain
- a room and await her customers. He further indicated that she
- would bring some very sexy clothes and a facial mask with her.
- She would wear the clothes and the mask. While she would feel
- free to remove the clothes at any time she chose, she would feel
- compelled to keep the mask on until she heard her name, Peggy.
-
- When she heard her name, she would remove the mask and real-
- ize that her customers were Jim and Tony. She would not feel un-
- comfortable about this. She would remember everything and enjoy
- each experience of the night. She was asked if she understood
- everything and was directed to repeat it. This she did without
- hesitation. The stage was set. Jim woke Peggy up and found that
- she was extremely aroused. They enjoyed one another as they often
- did after such sessions.
-
- Friday morning found Jim with a huge erection. This was not
- uncommon, but he was unusually large this morning. His anticipa-
- tion kept him hard most of the day. Tony called at about two
- o'clock in the afternoon to verify the night's arrangements. Jim
- assured him that everything was on for the Holiday Inn at eight
- o'clock. Tony indicated that he would meet Jim at the cafe at
- six.
-
- Jim didn't go home from work, but went directed to the cafe
- at about 5:30. He engaged in some small talk with some of the
- regulars, and Tony came bouncing in at about 5:45 rubbing his
- hands together. "Where is Peggy tonight?" Tony asked.
-
- "Who knows. Maybe she's out finding her own piece of tail."
- Jim said with tongue in cheek. He could only imagine the look on
- Tony's face when he found out.
-
- "Yea, sure Jim. You'd just shit if Peggy fucked around on
- you. Although, I have to admit, with a woman like that around the
- house, I don't have the foggiest notion of why you would ever
- stick your dick in anyone else," Tony commented.
-
- "I guess people are something like taste in candy bars Tony.
- Sometimes we feel like having a Milky Way, and every now and then
- you want some other kind. If all you ever ate was Milky Way, you
- would get tired of them. Have some other kind and the Milky Way
- is even better the next time. Your wife is a knock out, and you
- are going to suck and fuck someone else. Why is that?" Jim in-
- quired.
-
- "I see what you mean. I never quite looked at it that way
- before. The way you described this woman has really got me inter-
- ested. What else can you tell me about her?" Tony quizzed.
-
- "I told you quite a bit. She is about forty years old, great
- body, sexy way about her, gives great head and really enjoys com-
- ing. You will love it when you shoot your wad in this angel. She
- will scream and cum in gushes," Jim assured him.
-
- "Phone call, Jim," the bar maid announced. Dax picked up the
- phone and spoke briefly. Tony thought that it had to be their
- princess calling with the room number.
-
- They finished a few more drinks and ordered a couple of
- bottles of wine to go. Tony was visibly ready to fuck. He sat
- there anxiously looking at his watch. It was time for them to
- move over to the Holiday Inn. Jim told Tony to follow him, and
- they were on their way.
-
- As they approached the room, Tony was almost shaking as he
- thought about lovely undulating breasts with juicy pink nipples.
- Jim wanted to shake but didn't want to give anything away. He
- kept himself very calm and collected. Soon they stood in front of
- the door and looked at each other. Jim said, "what are you wait-
- ing for Tony, knock on the door." Tony tapped lightly and heard
- from within a request to come in.
-
- The door was unlocked. They entered quietly noting that the
- only light on was a dim light just inside the door. The voice
- that they heard was a husky whisper. "Come in gentlemen; make
- yourselves at home. I hope it's not too dark in here for you, but
- I like it subdued. There are glasses in the foyer. Fix us a glass
- of wine and get your asses over here. Both men were periodically
- shivering with excitement, thinking about the mystery of it all.
-
- Tony poured the wine into three glasses on a tray while Jim
- approached the bed. There she was. She graced the bed in the most
- seductive fashion. Lying across the open sheets, Peggy was
- dressed in a lace black teddy with built in wire bra holding her
- lovely breasts up for inspection, garter belt, black stockings
- and spike heels. Adorning the upper portion of her face was a
- black cat mask with red feathers framing her face. Hot. Very hot
- was all Jim could think. His cock was rock-hard. This was his
- wife. He had never seen this outfit before and continued to be-
- come even more aroused. "Hello Janet. Have you been waiting
- long?" Jim asked.
-
- "Too long. Now get over here and warm me up mother fucker. I
- need some of that glorious cock," she demanded in her throaty
- manner. Jim immediately melted onto the bed. Tony almost felt as
- though he were being left out until Jim introduced them. Tony
- told "Janet" that he was enchanted and began to remove his shirt.
- Jim was kissing Peggy and noticed how Tony riveted his eyes on
- her body as he continued to undress. Jim indicated that they both
- had an unfair advantage as he still had all of his clothes on.
-
- Peggy said, "listen Jim, you and I have been around the cor-
- ner before. Why don't you have a glass of wine while Tony and I
- get to know one another a little better." Jim's blood began to
- boil. He anxiously awaited the moment when they would first
- touch. Tony was no prude and had stripped all of his clothes and
- left them where they fell. He was hotter than a firecracker. The
- electric moment came. Tony, who had so often wanted to touch
- Peggy was now touching her and had no idea who she was. He began
- very gently by touching his lips to Peggy's.
-
- Soon their tongues touched and the kiss became more pas-
- sionate. Jim watched as Tony's experienced hands began searching
- for the hooks to her garment. It soon fell aside. Her breasts
- fell into the subdued light much to Jim's excitement. Tony momen-
- tarily pulled back from Peggy to gaze at her gorgeous mounds.
- They were perfect in every way. They rolled gently from side to
- side with Tony's advances. Her now hard nipples brushed against
- the hair on his chest. He reached up to cup one of the beautiful
- globes and pinch a nipple as he maintained his assault with his
- tongue in her mouth. Jim had everything to do to keep himself
- from coming in his pants as he heard Peggy begin to moan as he
- had never heard her moan before.
-
- Tony released the snaps between Peggy legs that held the
- bottom of the teddy in place. It was cast aside, and Jim watched
- as Tony's hand dipped down into Peggy's soft pussy curls with one
- hand as his other hand filled itself with pliant ass flesh. Jim
- had removed his clothing and was slowly stroking his thickening
- shaft. He had to be careful as he could come at any moment with
- such a hot scene in front of him. Jim watched as Tony's lips
- began sucking harder on Peggy's pert nipples. Her moans increased
- in intensity, and she started rubbing her clit against Tony.
- Peggy's lover touched his lips to her belly and continued trail-
- ing down to her fragrant muff. Peggy moved around on top of Tony
- to accommodate a position of 69 and lifted Tony's towering shaft
- into her mouth. She took this love organ deep inside her mouth
- and began to suck slowly.
-
- Jim's excitement continued to grow as he saw the globes of
- Peggy's ass come into view and Tony's hands surround them. Jim
- moved toward the bed stroking his gigantic member. He reached
- down and felt the weight of one of Peggy's heavy breasts as his
- hand moved up and down the length of his cock. Peggy reached
- around and drew Jim over to her. She released Tony's cock and
-
- replaced it with Jim's. Just when Tony was about to feel as if he
- had been abandoned, Peggy switched to suck his tool again. Back
- and forth she went bringing bliss to both men. Soon, both men
- felt Peggy begin to change positions. They released their respec-
- tive grips as Peggy got on her knees, waving her fanny in the
- air.
-
- "Tony, I want your thick bone in my hole now," she said.
- Tony quickly agreed and moved into position for a rear approach.
- He looked at the twin globes seemingly suspended in air and could
- smell the fragrant odor of her dripping love tunnel. Tony guided
- his now huge cock to the entrance to her gaping hair covered
- hole. He could see the soft pink lips pouting out, waiting for
- his organ. As the large mushroom-shaped head of his cock ap-
- proached Peggy's slick quim, Jim watched in rapture stroking his
- own monster. Tony's bone came closer and closer. Jim moved around
- in front of Peggy and offered his penis to her mouth. As Peggy's
- lips started to engulf Jim's cock, a deep moan escaped Peggy's
- lips and deep hot breath caressed Jim's cock. Tony's penis was
- beginning to spread the lips of Peggy's pussy. Slick with Peggy's
- emissions, Tony entered her effortlessly. Deeper and deeper his
- cock traveled until his hairy balls were slapping against her wet
- pussy.
-
- Peggy began to suck deeply on Jim's cock as Tony began pump-
- ing slowly. As he withdrew his cock from Peggy's dripping cunt,
- Tony noticed how his thick shaft was glistening with her juices.
- Again he pressed forward and felt Peggy press her ass harder
- against his bone. She continued to suck on Jim's cock. Then she
- hollered to Tony, "Fuck that cunt hole mother fucker. Fuck it
- harder. Deeper. Now." Her mouth continued to draw deeply on Jim's
- cock. Tony was stroking wildly now. In and out. Deeper and
- deeper. He twisted his hips as he drove forward and upward. He
- rotated his long tool inside of Peggy's hot cunt as he reached
- forward and grasped one of her taunt nipples.
-
- Jim drove his cock into his wife's mouth and reached for her
- other breast. The three of them continued to pound at one another
- until Peggy felt a new tightness in Tony's cock. He was going to
- go off. She reached between her legs and began to massage Tony's
- swaying balls. He drove once deep and hard as his hands grasped
- Peggy's tightening buttocks. Peggy could feel the thick gobs of
- cum shoot deep into her fuck hole. As Jim watched Peggy's mouth
- slide up and down his cock, he noticed her eyes, through her
- mask, roll up into her head. At this point he knew she was com-
- ing. Jim's rod began to convulse as his cream crept up and out of
- the head of his swollen member. Over and over again he felt gobs
- of jism squirt into Peggy's mouth. She was now grunting deep3ly;
- trying to get the most of her quaking hole. Tony, Peggy and Jim
- fell to the bed. They were all panting and somewhat out of
- breath. Jim heard Tony say that he had never had such a nut as
- this. No one moved for about fifteen minutes.
-
- Suddenly, Peggy got up from the bed and moved toward the
- rest room. Tony looked at Jim under half closed eyelids and asked
- him, "where in the hell did you find this gorgeous animal?" Jim
- merely smiled in response. Peggy returned after refreshing her-
- self and poured three more glasses of wine, handing one to each
- of her lovers.
-
- She pulled a side chair over to the bed and sat opposite
- them. Tony said, "listen lovely lady, I would sure feel better if
- you told me that this would happen again one day."
-
- Jim tapped Tony on the shoulder and said, " 'PEGGY' won't mind,
- will you honey?" Peggy removed the mask in one quick motion.
-
- "No Jim, I don't think I would mind, if you and Tony
- wouldn't mind. I thought it was kind of fun, didn't you think so,
- honey?"
-
- It took a full minute for all of this to register to Tony.
- He was incredulous and had no idea what to say. Jim told him,
- "don't try to understand right now Tony. We will explain it to
- you later. Just put your eyes back in your head, remember how
- great it was and put your pants on."
-
-
- CHAPTER FOURTEEN - MIND SEX
-
- Peggy had always admired the young relief mail man. Not only
- was he a nice looking man with a great build, he was always
- pleasant and cheerful. Her regular business letter carrier was an
- obnoxious, obvious liar. He must have stayed up nights thinking
- about some of the ludicrous tales that he shared with all of the
- business owners in the shopping plaza. She would often hide in
- the back of the store at the time that mail was delivered. Tim,
- the relief man was a welcome change, and she looked forward to
- him stopping in to chat for a few moments a day. Lately, and
- quite possibly unconsciously, she had been trying to dress a
- little more seductively so that he might notice her a bit more.
-
- Due to the worst illness reported to mankind, Bob, the
- regular mail man, announced that he would be on sick leave and
- may never return to the ranks of the walking or talking. "Damn
- shame," Peggy thought. Well, at least she would have an oppor-
- tunity to see Tim periodically.
-
- "How are you today, Tim?" Peggy asked as the strong, young
- mail carrier entered her shop. Her shoulders rolled a bit more
- than usual causing her full breasts to dance slightly. She felt
- as if her fanny was rather well framed by the jeans she was wear-
- ing and would periodically turn around to offer them in their
- best light.
-
- "Great! Don't the leaves changing colors make you think of
- when you were a kid?" he asked with his ever-present smile.
-
- "This is my favorite season. I brings to mind visions of
- marshmallow roasts, cider and hay rides. We used to always go on
- hay rides when we were kids. We didn't too often have a horse to
- pull us; usually it was just a tractor," Peggy said with a
- thoughtful, remembering look in her eyes.
-
- "Too bad we never had the opportunity to go on a hay ride
- together," Tim offered with a slightly wicked grin as he turned
- to go.
-
- Peggy was caught off guard. She had often thought about what
- a nice young man Tim was. She hadn't considered that he may have
- found her attractive enough to try to become intimate with.
- Before she could formulate a response, he was out of the door.
- She wondered whether he was serious or just being sociable. Peggy
- never gave much thought to having an affair. As a result she
- never developed many fantasies. Her husband, Jim had always indi-
- cated to her that he wouldn't be opposed to her expanding her
- horizons so long as she didn't become emotionally involved. She
- knew that he had gone astray on a few occasions, but she didn't
- want to know about it. She knew he loved her and didn't feel
- threatened.
-
- Tim and his winning manner began to make her think about it.
- What would be so wrong with making love with him. The one thing
- that she always thought about when it came to sex was the man's
- buttocks. She would close her eyes and imagine how it looked un-
- clothed; rippling as he walked across the room. Visions of his
- strong buns tightening to pump his hard meat into her wet hole
- would generally drive her crazy with desire. She had done it now.
- She had placed the thought in her mind, and she could almost feel
- it. Peggy had to get her mind on something else.
-
- As she busied herself with some overdue paper work, the
- thoughts continued to visit her. She imagined looking down at the
- erect nipples of her ample breasts. His lips moved gently from
- one to the other as his teeth gently tugged and manipulated each
- in turn. As her mind wandered, she felt her nipples becoming
- hard. The thought of his strong hands massaging her naked but-
- tocks swam into her head.
-
- Again she could see his erect penis entering her hairy love
- tunnel as his ass tightened to drive his bone home. Almost
- without thinking her hand fell into her lap, allowing her fingers
- to delve into the swollen lips of her wet pussy. Paper work
- wouldn't do. She would have to move around to get this out of her
- head. Peggy began to do some stock work. Moving around the shop
- seemed to help, at least for the time being.
-
- Six o'clock came and she was free to close the shop and head
- for home. By seven she had a light dinner on the table for her
- and her husband, and by eight the dishes were in the washer and
- she retired to the couch to relax and let the day dissolve. Again
- the thought that taunted her earlier returned. She tried
- desperately to get her mind on a sit-com that was on the TV, but
- it seemed futile. "Jim, would you like to go to bed a little
- early tonight?" Peggy asked with a feigned yawn.
-
- "Go ahead honey, I'll be in just as soon as I get done with
- the paper. I won't be but a few more minutes," Jim responded
- without taking his eyes off of the newspaper. Peggy could think
- of nothing but cock driving deep into her greasy love hole. She
- began by imagining Jim's pole, hard and long seeking new depths.
- Suddenly, her mind turned once again to Tim. She tried to imagine
- how long and thick his cock was, whether his penis rested on
- large, heavy balls and how his public hair looked. Peggy wondered
- whether one man's penis tasted any differently or felt any dif-
- ferently than another.
-
- After brushing her teeth, she stood nude in front of the
- mirror. Her eyes were first attracted to her heavy breasts. She
- could see her nipples begin to harden. Without thought her hands
- rose to her breasts to feel their weight. Her sharp, painted
- finger nails gently scratched the surface of her marble-like
- nipples. Shivers of excitement shot like lightening from her
- ultra-sensitive nipples to her loins. Her hands dropped to her
- hair-covered pussy and spread its lips to reveal her pulsing
- clit. Uncontrollably, her buttocks tightened increasing the sen-
- sations in her moistening crotch as she slid her finger teasingly
- over this fiery nub.
-
- Her hands began to travel from one part of her fine body to
- another, touching, teasing, investigating and squeezing. Peggy's
- legs became weak as her excitement increased. She thought better
- of standing for this welcomed torture. Peggy sought her soft bed
- and quite naturally got hotter and more aroused as her mind con-
- tinued its erotic focus. She allowed her fingers to dip down into
- the inner folds of her honey pot as one hand reached up and began
- to manipulate a soft pink nipple. Moistening her index finger
- with her saliva, she began to slide it back and forth over her
- expanding nipples. Her ear was tuned in to the sound of Jim's
- recliner chair being released to the ground. Shit! She was ready,
- and she needed it soon.
-
- Jim came in shortly afterward, took off his clothes, set out
- his night clothes and began to brush his teeth in the adjoining
- bathroom. Peggy couldn't take her eyes off of his hairy ass and
- his heavy member swinging gently between his strong legs. Each
- time the head of his flaccid penis came into sight, Peggy's ex-
- citement increased. Each time she saw the flex of his buttocks
- she imagined that he was driving his bone into her slippery,
- tight crevice. Closing her eyes she could see the thick head of
- his penis pushing the lips of her tight vagina wide open. "Do you
- suppose that you can do me a favor and forget to put your pajamas
- on?" Peggy said seductively.
-
- Jim recognized the mood. Peggy needed to ride his hard cock
- and get a nut. He smiled his custopeggy smile and said, "anything
- for my beautiful love princess." He entered the sheets to find
- that Peggy had removed her night clothes and was ready. He lifted
- the sheets to gaze at her lovely body. Her heavy breasts swayed
- delightfully back and forth as if they had a life of their own.
- Her nipples had hardened to the point of gathering a nice expanse
- of her lovely, soft breasts around them. There were wrinkles in
- her white tit flesh a full half inch around her dark pink
- nipples. As his eyes traveled lower, they settled on her soft,
- fluffy muff of pubic hair which warmed her slick vagina. The
- muscles of her stomach rippled with anticipation as she threw one
- leg over Jim's thighs and devoured his waiting lips with her own.
-
- Peggy yearned with the excitement that she had allowed to
- build throughout the day. Her breasts ached to be sucked and
- squeezed. Her thoughts traveled back and forth between Jim and
- Tim. Each time that she felt the warmth of Jim's hand on her
- flesh her excitement increased. She was thinking about Tim's hard
- tool investigating her depths. Soon Peggy slid down Jim's body
- and grabbed his stiff bone in a tight grasp. Without further
- warning or delay, she engulfed his raging cock with her hot
- mouth.
-
- Jim twisted around without dislodging his swollen member,
- filled his hands with the flesh of Peggy's ass cheeks and drove
- his hot tongue into her fragrant pussy. They were locked in the
- careless, mindless embrace of passion as they had their fill of
- one another's delights.
-
- Moving slowly and methodically, these lovers became locked
- together in the traditional embrace of lust. Ever so slowly, he
- placed the angry head of his thick staff at the threshold of her
- slick sex. He began to slow fuck Peggy as he watcher her eyes
- portray a hungry animal. Gradually he picked up the pace in
- response to her pleading. As Jim drove his thick spike into
- Peggy's gyrating cock-glove, he filled his hands intermittently
- with her quivering thighs, bouncing breasts, and rounded ass
- cheeks.
-
- The globes of her full ass rolled and rippled with each
- thrust. Jim could never remember her being this horny. As Peggy
- came hard for the third time, Jim pulled his cock from her tight
- hole, aimed it at her gyrating breasts and shot his thick cream
- between her lovely globes. As she grunted away the last of her
- climax, thinking of Tim pouring his cream on her tits, Peggy
- filled her still twitching hole with one hand and smeared Jim's
- hot come over her nipples with the other hand.
-
- "I don't know what made you as crazy as you were tonight
- honey, but if it was some kind of a pill, take two next time. You
- turned me on more than I can ever remember being turned on. I
- think it was the wild animal look in your eyes. I hope you en-
- joyed it as much as I did, honey," Jim said as he gasped for
- breath. Soon they were both in a deep rewarding sleep.
-
- The next morning Peggy woke first and found that she felt
- unusually sore; as if she had done hard physical labor the day
- before. Suddenly, she remembered why she felt that way. Peggy en-
- tered the hot spray of her morning shower and felt the pulse of
- the water dancing on her tender nipples. Soaping the hairy muff
- of her womanhood, her mind returned to the visions that she had
- trapped in her memory. Her soapy hands slid effortlessly over her
- heavy breasts, her tightening nipples, into the crack of her ass
- and between the lips of her sex. She was becoming turned on all
- over again. Realizing that time was limited, she hurried her
- shower and robbed herself of additional pleasure.
-
- As she fixed the coffee and began to realize why she had
- been so horny, she began to feel confusion and shame. She had
- been thinking of Tim. She could remember seeing his ass flying as
- he drove his cock meat into her slick hole. Her shame soon drove
- the thought out of her head. Jim came out into the dining room
- and smiled at her. She tried to avoid his glance so that she
- wouldn't give herself away. Finally Jim said to her, "Peggy, is
- something wrong honey? It couldn't have been last night. That was
- probably the best sex we've ever had. I woke up with such a hard
- cock I could probably cut diamonds with it."
-
- Peggy began to whimper as she told Jim about her fantasy and
- the guilt she was feeling. Jim listened calmly as she explained
- her fantasy and who it was about. A slight smile came over Jim as
- he began to comfort her, "Peggy, you didn't do anything wrong. I
- have fantasies all the time. It doesn't mean that I don't love
- you, or that I prefer to make love with someone else. It's
- natural. Everyone has them. If it would guarantee that we would
- have sex like that all the time, you could ball this guy once a
- week. Just the thought of you having a fantasy about another man
- excites me beyond words."
-
- "You're out of your mind! I would never make love with
- another man. I am married to you, and my body belongs to you,"
- she said with some fire. "I just found that it made it exciting
- to think about someone else. I would never cheat on you Jim."
-
- "Your body doesn't belong to me. It belongs to you. I don't
- look at it as though you were cheating or even wanted to. I'm
- just glad that you enjoyed yourself. It's always been exciting
- for me to know that others found you attractive and sexy. How do
- you think I would feel if no one else thought you were sensual or
- exciting?" Jim inquired.
-
- "Let's not talk about it any more right now, OK Jim?" Peggy
- pleaded. "I feel very unusual, and I don't really understand
- what's going on in my head right now. I just want to stop think-
- ing about it right now and get ready to open the shop.
-
- "OK honey. Just don't be too hard on yourself. You enjoyed
- it and there was no harm done. I told you once before that the
- only thing that would concern me is if you got emotionally in-
- volved with someone to the point that you lost your love for me,"
- he said.
-
- Peggy answered quickly and emphatically, "I could never love
- anyone more than I love you. You're my partner and my best
- friend. You always will be."
-
- "Now that's what I like to hear. Go and get ready, you're
- going to be late," Jim said in a simulated scolding as he tapped
- her on the fanny.
-
- As she completed the opening procedure at the shop, Peggy
- began to think about how she would feel when Tim brought the mail
- in. Would she feel embarrassed or dirty. Could she look him in
- the eye if he decided to talk to her. As the noon hour arrived
- her anticipation increased. "So did you hear the newest Pea Wee
- joke?" Tim asked as he opened the door and floated in. His good
- spirits seemed to make everything OK. She caught herself prancing
- a bit for him to show off her attributes. They talked about quite
- a few different topics in the short time that Tim was able to
- stay. As he began to make his last comments prior to departure,
- Peggy started to feel sad to see him go. "I wish we could have
- talked a little longer," Peggy said to her own surprise.
-
- "I'll tell you what Peggy; I get off at four. What do you
- say I stop and get us some coffee and bring it by?" Tim sug-
- gested. Peggy began to stumble with her words, trying to formu-
- late an answer. Tim hurried to her defense by adding, "I guess
- that was a bit forward. You will probably be tied up, and I
- shouldn't have asked. I'll be able to stop tomorrow for a little
- while, and we'll talk then when I deliver the mail.
-
- Peggy, having composed herself and got a grip on what was
- going on, thought for a moment and offered, "I'm not all that
- busy. It would be nice if you could stop back. I take my coffee
- with one cream and one sugar."
-
- Incredulously, Tim answered, "OK Peggy. It's a deal. I
- should be by at about four-fifteen. See you then."
-
- What in the hell have I gotten myself into now? Peggy
- thought. I'll just be leading this guy on, and he's such a nice
- guy. Hey! Maybe he doesn't even have anything on his mind other
- than conversation. Not all men are fuck bunnies. He may just want
- to talk and kill some time before going someplace. Her mind con-
- tinued to develop various scenarios until after four o'clock.
-
- "One coffee with cream and sugar coming up," Tim announced
- as he entered the door negotiating his package. He had apparently
- removed his uniform shirt and was wearing his jacket over a tee
- shirt.
-
- "Come on in the back so we can drink our coffee without cus-
- tomers gawking at us," Peggy invited. They sat at a small table
- next to the divan as Peggy prepared her coffee and began to test
- its heat with her lips.
-
- "I bet you were just counting the minutes until I got here,
- weren't you Peggy," Tim said with a humorous grin on his face. "I
- hope that I didn't give you the wrong impression when I invited
- myself over for coffee. I know you are married and from what you
- say you are happy. It isn't my intention to screw anything up,
- but you are very attractive and great to talk to. I just enjoy
- spending time with you. Don't get me wrong. I would love to make
- love to you, but I fully understand the situation. So let's have
- some coffee, talk about the regular mail man behind his back and
- then I'll run.
-
- Peggy had a slightly shocked look on her face. It was soon
- replaced by a sneaking smile. She was flattered by what he had
- said and couldn't help but think how cute he was being. "Tim, I
- would be lying to you if I told you that I didn't think about
- being with you. You look great and I enjoy talking with you as
- well, but..."
-
- "I know. I know. Don't say it. You don't have to explain,"
- Tim said in an effort to spare Peggy from the embarrassment of
- rejecting him. Peggy set down her coffee and reached out to
- cradle his face. As if controlled by some unknown force, she
- pressed her full lips to his with closed eyes. His hungry lips
- caressed her own and soon moved to the side of her neck. She felt
- shivers running down her neck. Her nipples began to tingle, and
- she became aware of her moistening womanhood.
-
- As she held his lips close to her hot skin, she panted to
- Tim, "I'm always so damn concerned about everyone and everything
- around me - trying to be everything that everyone wants me to be.
- I'm tired of trying to be perfect. I want you, Tim. I want to
- feel you touch me. I need to feel you inside of me. I want to
- feel your hard bone go off in me and paint my insides with your
- thick cream."
-
- Peggy jumped up abruptly, excused herself and told Tim that
- she would return in a moment. She shot to the front of the shop,
- locked the door and turned the OPEN sign around.
-
- Upon her return, Peggy dropped to her knees, her hands fum-
- bling with his zipper. She slid her hands over the front of his
- trousers, around to his buttocks and returned to quickly released
- his raging manhood. Her boiling breath danced on the head of his
- penis, and his legs began to weaken. Holding his massive, hairy
- balls in her soft hands, she descended on his quaking tool. First
- one inch, then another slipped into the comfortable sheath of her
- warm mouth. As the head of his rock-hard penis touched the back
- of her wet throat, her lips closed on his engorged shaft. Gently
- his hands cradled her soft hair, guiding the path of his erect,
- searching member. As her lips and tongue played on the thick meat
- of his cock, her hands unbuttoned his trousers and lowered them
- to the floor. Sensuously, her hands slid up the back of his legs
- and clasped his hair-covered buttocks, squeezing him more deeply
- into her hungry mouth.
-
- Tim was heaven-bound. He reached down, lifted her sweater
- and released the catch to her bra. Peggy's full, swollen breasts
- bounced into his waiting hands. Her nipples felt like marbles in
- his strong hands as he squeezed her soft, firm flesh. A croaking
- groan escaped her lips and made his swollen cock tremble as he
- rolled her nipples between each thumb and index finger. Reaching
- under her arms, Tim raised Peggy to her feet, pressed her close
- to him and drove his tongue deep into her open mouth. Tim's hands
- slid into the elastic waistband of Peggy's jeans, beneath her
- panties to grasp her smooth, warm buttocks.
-
- The spongy texture of her undulating ass cheeks only served
- to increase his excitement. While one hand cupped one of her
- ample breasts to test its weight, his other hand dipped into the
- moist crevice of her ass to feel its heat. Dropping yet further,
- Tim's hand brushed her anal button, and he could feel the soft,
- wiry texture of her tangled pubic hair. His search soon resulted
- in the slick swollen prize of her gaping love tunnel. Moisture
- began to roll from her as her mind was totally devoted to this
- erotic moment.
-
- Peggy's hands began to fumble with his tee shirt, his jacket
- having been summarily discarded. Her fingers searched through the
- lustrous hair of his strong chest as she continued to kiss his
- neck and shoulders. Soon they were both totally nude and began
- their short trip to the divan.
-
- "Let's take it slow, Peggy. I want this to last as long as
- possible. Get up on your knees so I can enter you from behind and
- play with your lovely breasts," Tim suggested softly as his hands
- continued to start new fires on her highly sensitized skin.
-
- Peggy slowly turned over and got up on her hands and knees
- on the divan. Tim placed his hand high on her shoulders to pres-
- sure her to lower her head and elevate her fanny. Taking a posi-
- tion behind Peggy, Tim's eyes were blessed with the most lovely
- view of Peggy's full buttocks and open pussy. He spread her
- cheeks with his strong hands and began tasting her sweet honey
- pot. Peggy groaned, "Oh, suck my pussy, Tim. Stick you tongue
- deep inside of me." Tim obeyed her orders as he stiffened his
- tongue and rubbed it hard against her clit.
-
- Shivering, Peggy whispered, "Fuck me with your hard tongue,
- Tim. Drive it deep into my hole. Fuckkkkkkkkk me!" Peggy had
- begun to experience her first climax as Tim continued to pay
- homage to her burning love hole. She pushed back against his wet
- mouth and reached under herself to pinch and roll her nipples. "I
- need your cock, Tim. Stick that big piece of hard cock meat into
- me. Drive it home, honey."
-
- Tim didn't need much encouragement. He wiped his face with
- his hand and transferred the moisture to Peggy's wiggling ass
- cheeks. Taking his long, thick pole in his trembling hand, Tim
- placed the enlarged head against the swollen, greased lips of her
- pulsating pussy. Immediately, Peggy began to press backward in
- hopes of expediting the entry. Tim filled his hands with her
- shuddering buttocks to control her rearward travel. His eyes were
- treated to the lovely texture of her ass. His hands were blessed
- with the spongy feel of her writhing globes. The scent of her sex
- filled his head with a heavy aroma that spoke pages of primal ex-
- citement. Slowly his starchy bone entered Peggy's wet cavern an
- inch at a time. He heard her begin to cry ever so quietly. "Are
- you OK, Peggy?" concern filled his voice.
-
- "I haven't been this OK in a long time, Tim. Fuck your long
- pole up into my greasy pussy. Fuck me hard! Fuck me deep! Fuck me
- like you've never fucked anyone before. Squeeze my ass. Tell me
- you need your cock in me. Feel the weight of my tits and pinch my
- nipples. Do my tits turn you on?" she continued her staccato
- series of wild statements and frantic demands.
-
- "I do need my cock in you, Peggy. I need it bad. Your tits
- turn me on more than I can say. The way you're talking to me
- drives me wild. I can't hold on much longer," Tim said as he
- turned his attention to anything but what he was doing. He
- thought about taking out the trash. He thought about rug burn on
- his knees. He began to do math problems; anything to keep him
- from coming too soon. Suddenly Peggy rolled out from beneath his
- driving piston and collapsed on the floor.
-
- "Relax for a moment, Tim. I don't want this wonderful feel-
- ing to be over so soon. Kiss me," Peggy implored. Tim tenderly
- placed his lips against Peggy's eyelids as they closed. Her arms
- reached up to cradle his head to her rolling breasts. Tim reached
- down between her splayed legs, and his eager hand rested in the
- nest of her pubic bush. It was damp with her juices and covered
- her thick, swollen pussy lips. They pouted for additional atten-
- tion. First one finger entered her body and then the other. His
- thumb began to circle her love button as her head began to roll
- back and forth in time with her moans. Lowering his head to suck
- on Peggy's nipples, Tim began to rotate his fingers inside of her
- leaking tunnel. Deeper and deeper his efforts were directed,
- remembering that the "G" spot was within his reach.
-
- Soon a gush of climax was released from her deepest
- recesses, painting his hand as Peggy's eyes rolled up into her
- ecstatic head. "Oh oh ohhhhhhhh Timmmmmm! I'm commminng," she
- groaned long and low. "I need your hard meat to spray my wet hole
- with your cream. Put it in. Fuck me hard, please."
-
- Opening her legs and raising her knees, Tim directed his
- gigantic rod into her slippery crevice. The excitement continued
- to build as he looked down and saw her pubic hair drenched with
- her own excitement. His immense member encountered no resistance
- as it quickly slid into her deepest channel. As he slowly
- withdrew his glistening rod from her tight pussy, he watched her
- pubic hair cling to his shaft. Looking across the room at a
- floor-length dressing mirror, Peggy saw the reflection of his
- perfectly shaped ass tightening to drive his bone as deeply as
- possible. She began to buck wildly. Tim rolled over with Peggy in
- tow. Holding her by her arms just above the elbows, Tim continued
- to drive his cock up into her swollen, glistening hole. Her heavy
- breasts dangled dreamily in his face. Periodically, he would
- lower her so that he could intermittently suck on one nipple and
- then the other.
-
- Peggy continued to urge him on in the throatiest voice she
- could muster, "fuck my hole, Tim. Squirt your thick come into my
- pussy. Kiss me! Kiss me." She lowered her floating tits onto his
- chest as her tongue sought his open mouth. His hands reached be-
- hind her and began to squeeze her wiggling buttocks. Allowing his
- hand to dip into the crack of her ass cheeks, he found that it
- too was drenched with her juice. His fingers slid over her slip-
- pery anal button and dipped into the rear of her gaping, hairy
- hole. He felt his own rigid penis splitting the grasping lips of
- her sex.
-
- He drove harder and deeper as his hands continued their as-
- sault on her smooth, slippery buttocks. She whispered the lan-
- guage of love into his ear urging him on. "Fuck my cunt mother
- fucker. Drive your cock bone into my guts. Squeeze my buttocks
- and feel my heavy titties on your chest." Suddenly he could feel
- the tell-tail constriction of his heavy balls as he prepared to
- spill his fluid into Peggy's sucking hole. He drove it hard and
- deep one last time and froze as the love cream traveled up from
- his tight sack, through the rigid vessel of his throbbing cock,
- out of its bulbous head and into her gripping love muscle. Peggy
- took the last advantage of his unyielding bone and increased the
- speed at which her quivering channel slipped over the length of
- his penis. Her fingers dug deep into his flexing buttocks as her
- eyes returned to the mirror to lock the memory into her fiery
- mind. Soon, deep grunts began to issue forth from Peggy as if
- they had their origin deep within her. Their climactic juices
- mixed into a cocktail of aromatic desire.
-
- The soft tender moments following their union glided away
- slowly. Peggy rested in his strong arms as he tenderly kissed her
- hair and rubbed the smooth skin of her back. "I would have never
- believed that we would have been together," Peggy spoke first.
-
- "It has been like a dream. Peggy, I don't think that I have
- ever been that turned on. I have often thought of making love to
- you. I would come into the shop and look at you. I would try not
- to be obvious. I usually waited until your eyes were diverted to
- sneak peeks at your lovely body; the swell of your ass as you
- walked slowly across the room, the bounce of your breasts, the
- smile that slowly appeared when I would come in the door. I am so
- glad that you consented to let me make love to you," he rambled.
-
- She quickly returned, "it wasn't a matter of consenting,
- Tim. I wanted you to. I hope that you won't think less of me now.
- Once the heat of the moment wears off, I hope that I won't feel
- so guilty that I won't be able to handle it. This is the first
- time that I have ever made love with anyone other than Jim.
-
- "Just promise me one thing, Peggy. Just promise me that
- there will be another day. Even if you don't mean it. Promise me.
- Let me leave today knowing that I'll have the opportunity to be
- with you again," Tim pleaded. Faced with Peggy's silence, Tim
- added, "if you can't promise me that, promise me that we will
- continue to be friends."
-
- "Friends don't need to make promises like that," Peggy said.
- "Friends let things happen naturally and support one another when
- they do happen. Somehow I think that we'll be together again. I
- hope so." She silently wondered what Jim would think if he knew.
- She also wondered whether Jim had ever felt like this with
- someone else. She knew that she would again feel this wonder.
-
- Suddenly, Jim snapped his fingers and Peggy fell into a deep
- trance. Tim's muscular young form had miraculously undergone a
- metamorphosis. Jim stood in Tim's place, pleased with the fantasy
- that he had led Peggy through. I knew she always wanted to fuck a
- mail man, he thought. He left her with the suggestion that she
- would not be guilt ridden, and she would relish the memory as a
- dream.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER FIFTEEN - MIND SEX
-
- Jim was out of town on another business trip. Peggy had been so
- busy lately with her new job as a electronic technician that she
- hadn't had time to give much thought to feeding her sexual urges.
-
- It never failed though. She was at a new job site, here was a
- great looking guy, working close to her on this project for the
- past three days, and she continued to be too shy to show her
- interest in hi m. Michael was about 33 years of age, five feet,
- ten inches tall and about 165 pounds. He was in great shape and
- had a ruggedly handsome face that drew her like a magnet. He was
- always dressed impeccably and his dark hair was well groomed.
-
- Each time they came into close proximity, Peggy smelled his
- scent and could feel his masculinity. He had a great looking set
- of buns that Peggy enjoyed sneaking peaks at as he walked around
- the room. From the bulge in the front of his pants, she could
- imagine that he would have much to offer. However, she was
- concerned that at 43 years of age, he might perceive her as a
- little too old for his liking. She didn't think she could deal
- with his rejection. As a result, she didn't want to make it too
- obvious that she found him attractive.
-
- "How about lunch, Peggy? Have you made any plans?" Michael
- asked as they finished up the installation of part of the
- equipment that his firm had purchased.
-
- "I didn't have any plans, Michael. What did you have in mind?"
- Peggy responded.
-
- "I thought that maybe we could stop by the Cortez. They're
- supposed to have great Mexican food. Are you game?" he queried.
- Peggy was surprised and pleased that he would ask her to join
- him. They removed to the parking lot and Michael offered to
- drive. As they enjoyed a quiet lunch, Peggy began to think that
- Michael may be interested in her after all. "I hope that your
- husband won't be upset that we've gone out together, Peggy," he
- said.
- "Jim wouldn't mind at all, Michael. He is always encouraging me
- to meet new people. Besides, he's out of town for the next couple
- of days. We could be running naked down the middle of the road
- and he wouldn't know," she responded.
-
- Michael thought for a moment and with his eyes focused on the
- rim of his margarita glass said, "Does he also encourage you to
- meet new people that find you as attractive as I do?" Peggy
- looked at him with disbelief. "You're not hitting on me, are you
- Michael? I thought that I would have to make the first move and I
- was afraid that it would be the last as well."
-
- Michael's eyes lit up at hearing this, and a smile spread
- across his handsome face. "Is there any chance that we can get
- together later? I would very much like to get to know you on a
- social basis, if you don't think it would compromise you too
- much. I can assure you that I am the soul of discretion." His
- hand reached out and touched her nervous hand as his eyes danced
- from her lovely face to her swelling breasts.
-
- "Why don't you call me at about seven tonight. I'll know a
- little better what page I'm on then. If all goes well, you may be
- able to come over and watch a movie or something," Peggy said as
- she became aware of his gaze on her breasts and began to feel a
- tingling stir in the pit of her stomach. She was nervous, but she
- didn't want to pass up a chance at spending a little time with
- this wonderful looking and sweet man. Jim had so often suggested
- that she broaden her horizons. He usually created or helped to
- create her fantasies. It would be exciting to break fear's icy
- grip and show Jim that she could be creative all on her own. He
- would be shocked and terribly happy to know that she had.
-
- Peggy got home at half past five, fed the fish and began
- straightening up the house. She couldn't get her mind off of
- Michael. What had she gotten herself into? She was becoming more
- excited but increasingly apprehensive thinking about being with
- him. After putting the house in order, Peggy started to run her
- bath water. She quickly removed her clothes and suddenly caught
- her reflection in the full mirror. She did look great for a woman
- her age. Jim always told her that she was one of the most
- exciting women he had ever known. She threw her shoulders back
- and pressed her full breasts toward the mirror. They were indeed
- lovely.
-
- Her hands went to the mounds of tit flesh, felt their weight
- and squeezed gently. Her pink nipples were beginning to harden
- and contract into beautiful knobs of rubbery meat. Taking each
- into her thumbs and forefingers, she began to roll them back and
- forth, increasing the pressure. Her hands traveled down the sides
- of her firm breasts to her hips, around to her warming thighs and
- inward to the curls of her pubic garden. Electricity shot through
- her as her fingers sought the nub of her swollen clit. First one
- finger entered and then another. She could feel the slick
- emission of her love lubricant prepare the way for the searching
- fingers of her left hand. With her right hand she reached around
- her hip to feel the texture and weight of her tightening ass
- cheek. Damn was she hot. She w anted to fuck Michael in the worst
- way. She began to imagine how his stiff cock bone would feel in
- her hairy cunt when she noticed the bath water reaching a
- dangerous level.
-
- She stopped her self assault, turned off the bath water and
- tested its temperature. It was just tolerable so she pinned up
- her long brown curls and gently entered its heat, continuing to
- admire her poised body in the mirror. The heat of the water
- served to relax her tensed form. She quickly put herself into a
- light trance and seemed to melt into the porcelain of the tub.
-
- The time passed quickly and soon seven o'clock registered on
- the clock in the dining room. Minutes later the phone rang. Peggy
- slowly approached the phone already having made up her mind to
- invite Michael over. "It's your new electronic friend, Peggy.
- Have I caught you at a bad time?" Michael asked.
-
- "Oh no, Michael. You're right on time. Everything looks good
- over here, if you would like to stop over around nine. Would that
- work into your plans all right?" she asked in hopes that he
- hadn't changed his mind.
-
- Michael didn't hesitate for a moment, "My plans can only hope
- that you still want to see me. I can be there at nine. Can I
- bring anything with me?"
-
- "Just you. We'll have a little pizza and watch some videos of
- the Little Rascals. Don't be late," Peggy encouraged prior to
- hanging up the receiver. Oh christ, she thought. He really is
- coming over. I better find something to wear.
-
- Peggy picked out a pair of stretch pants that accented her legs
- and fanny quite well and a fitted top that was a little more low
- cut than she wore out in public. Pizza in the oven and a bottle
- of white wine on ice, what else, she thought. Well, I guess
- that's it. Now she had only to sit and wait on pins and needles
- until he arrived.
-
- The time couldn't pass quickly enough. Five minutes to nine and
- the bell rang. Oh shit, she thought, I didn't even put on the
- front light. She opened the door and Michael stood there with a
- cute grin on his face. "You look great, Peggy. What's that I
- smell, pizza?" he said as he entered.
-
- Wine was poured, pizza served and the movie was put in the
- video player. Spanky was "hunt'n bugs" and the couple settled on
- to the couch to appreciate the antics of the classic kids. "What
- prompted you to invite me over, Peggy? I really didn't think that
- you would look twice at me," Michael said in a soft voice.
-
- Peggy twisted to face him and then diverted her gaze at the
- space between them, "In the last few days I've had a chance to
- work with you and I think I have come to know you well enough to
- know that you are a gentleman. That was my first concern. Beyond
- that, you look great and you treat me with respect. What's there
- not to like? I'm not going to lie to you. I find you exciting,
- and I wanted to spend some time with you. You have....." Her
- mouth was silenced when Michael covered her soft lips with his
- own. Immediately, his hands were on her breasts as her breath was
- stopped by his quick act ions. She seemed to melt right into his
- embrace.
-
- Soon his hands were under to blouse, but it was restrictive
- because it was so tight. He reached behind her and unzipped her
- zipper and gave himself room to roam. Peggy shrugged her
- shoulders without taking her lips from his. The blouse fell free
- and she helped him remove it. Her bra held her breasts upright as
- if an offering to a god. Michael's seemingly skilled fingers
- found the catch and popped it free. Again she rolled her
- shoulders to shed this barrier. As her breasts fell free
- Michael's eyes seemed glued to their sway and dance. His hands
- returned slowly and gently as he cradled them seeking the juicy
- nipples with his thumb and forefinger. A gratifying gasp escaped
- from her mouth directly into his lungs.
-
- Peggy's fingers reached for the buttons to his shirt and began
- to release them. Michael twisted in an effort to dislodge his
- shirt tail from its hiding place and tore one of the sleeve
- buttons as he discarded his shirt. Peggy's hands searched his
- hairy chest and tweaked his sensitive nipples. Michael could feel
- his cock begin its metamorphosis. It was straining within the
- confines of his trousers.
-
- Suddenly he rose, unzipped his trousers and left them were they
- fell. Peggy slipped her thumbs inside the waistband of her slacks
- and peeled them from her heated loins. Michael reached for Peggy
- and brought her to her feet to embrace her lovely curves. They
- stood locked in one another's arms exploring, squeezing and
- holding each other.
-
- "Come with me, Michael. Let's go where it is a lot more
- comfortable. Bring the glasses and the wine, would you?" Peggy
- invited. Michael watched the roll of her well-defined buttocks
- under her tight, pink panties as she preceded him to the bedroom.
- She seemed to be walking on air. His hot cock continued to become
- more rigid as he thought about her hot flesh wrapped around him.
-
- As Peggy deposited Michael in the bed, she excused herself,
- walked over to the stereo and turned on the soft sounds of love.
- The door to the bath room closed, and she reappeared moments
- later with a bottle of coconut oil. "Turn over on your stomach
- and relax, Michael. I want to rub your back for you," Peggy said
- seductively as she sat on the edge of the large bed.
-
- Her hands, filled with oil, began to spread the oil on his
- back, neck, buttocks and thighs. She loved the feel of his taunt
- muscles under her invading hands. Moans escaped Michael's mouth
- as her hands reached between the strong ass muscles to knead the
- strong flesh. He could feel the oil slowly run into the crack of
- his buttocks and down to his heavy cum sack. Her hands teased his
- hairy balls lightly and returned to deeply massage the tensing
- knots of his ass. "Turn over, love," Peggy whispered as she
- gently encouraged him with a hand on his hip.
-
- Her eyes were treated as his growing cock meat came into view.
- She applied the oil to his pectoral muscles, belly and thighs. He
- closed his eyes, put his hands behind his head and relished the
- feel of her gentle, but firm hands caress his body. She watched
- his eyebrows raise without opening his eyes as she assaulted his
- stiff cock bone with one hand and his heavy sack with the other.
- A gasp of pleasure escaped his lips as her oil-drenched hand
- easily slid down his thick fuck pole to meet the hand on his
- hairy balls. "If you keep that up, no pun intended, I'm going to
- go off before I should," he said with a smile with a deep, sultry
- voice.
-
- "Now its my turn, Michael. Would you mind giving me a massage?
- I'm dying to have your hands on me," she said as her lips reached
- down to touch Michaels. She fell into his arms, and her tongue
- slipped between his open lips. She could feel her aching breasts
- slide across his greased chest.
-
- He broke the kiss and flipped her on the bed over his hip. "I
- can't wait to touch your beautiful fucking body. Get on your
- belly and hand me the oil," he said authoritatively. In seconds
- his strong hands were filled with the oil and touching the
- hollows and peaks of her flesh. His eyes moved from her flexed,
- towering ass cheeks to the hint of public hair nestled between
- her slightly spread leg s. They traveled to her back and the
- swell of her breasts on either side. Damn, this woman felt
- wonderful. His hands both glided and penetrated her hot flesh.
-
- Michael turned her over and applied the warm oil to her breasts
- and belly. Her spiked nipples glistened with the sheen of the
- lubricant as did her red-brown public curls. His hands treated
- themselves to her tit flesh, raising them into towers and
- allowing them to descend to their relaxed state. He teased her
- quivering pussy by approaching her enraged clit but not touching
- it. Suddenly, he reached deep between her slightly parted legs
- and jammed two fingers into her depth. "Ohhhhhhhh! Shit, Michael.
- Fuck my hot cunt with your fingers. Move them around, deeper,
- harder. Fuck my greasy pussy, honey," she grunted as her hands
- reached out to pull his hand deeper inside of her quaking hole.
-
- "Oh fuck, baby. You are so wet and slippery. My cock is going
- to feel soooo good inside your treasure hole. Move around here so
- I can taste your honey," he pleaded. His mouth gorged itself with
- her hairy pussy lips as he moved his bulk around so that she
- could have access to his furious cock meat.
-
- "Give me your bone, Michael. Let me suck your mother fucking
- cock. Squeeze my ass, honey," she screamed as her lips spread to
- accommodate his oil-covered love pole. She drove his penis
- immediately into the back of her mouth and lodged its bulbous,
- purple-hued head into the tight muscles of her hot throat. Her
- moans served to rattle the head of his cock with the vibrations
- of her ecstasy.
-
- As Michael drove his tongue into the depths of her slippery
- hole, his nose nestled into the rubbery button of her ass hole.
- He could feel the tiny hairs surrounding this nether hole tickle
- his nose, and he drove it in harder. Her musky fragrance filled
- his senses and his cock felt as if it would burst. One hand
- reached behind her to fill itself with meandering ass flesh,
- while the other reached back to twist one of her glowing nipples.
- "Pinch it, Michael. Pinch my nipple hard, harder," she demanded,
- momentarily releasing her mouth from his slippery, driving bone.
-
- Peggy came up, apparently for air, looked down at her breasts
- resting on his chest and his chin buried in her muff. "Oh, fuck
- me, Michael. I need your cock in my guts. Put your fuck pole in
- my cunt, honey."
-
- Michael released his two-handed grip on her lovely flesh and
- rose from the position he was in. She quickly placed herself in
- the most vulnerable position; legs spread wide and pulled back.
- She saw him grasp his long cock and stroke it as his eyes seemed
- to memorize the folds of her slick pussy lips and the heaving of
- her breasts. Closer and closer his engorged member came to her
- waiting honey pit. As his cock reached the lips of her pouting
- cunt, she cradled her left breast with one hand and spread her
- hungry pussy with the other.
-
- His cock seemed gigantic with lovely veins feeding its length
- and an angry looking spear-head kissing the lips of her
- womanhood. She began to quiver in anticipation of the joy she
- knew would follow. Michael dipped his cock into her oily pussy
- only and inch and removed it. He slid it up and down the length
- of her slit to insure that he was well lubricated and then drove
- it to the deepest recesses of her canal. "Holy fuuuuck. Oh my god
- that feels so good and so deep. Fuck me. Move you cock in and
- out. Slam your bone into my hairy hole and fuck me," Peggy was
- repeating with her eyes as wide open as they had ever been.
-
- The look on her face was similar to fear, but Michael knew that
- it was the look of love-lust. He continued to drive and withdraw
- his thick, rigid cock meat in her gaping love hole. Peggy reached
- between their perspiring bodies and inserted her fingers in her
- pussy to feel his cock enter. She continued her travels to his
- heavy sack and massaged his swaying balls. He felt so good inside
- of her a nd although she had her hopes, she never imagined that
- this man could make her feel this good. She hoped that his cock
- would never stop fucking her sloppy, deep hole.
-
- Michael abruptly stopped as his cock was driven in as deep as
- he could go. "Honey, I would like you to get on your knees so I
- can fuck your cunt hole from behind. I want to dog-fuck your
- wonderfully tight pussy. I want to watch your buns move as I
- drive my love bone into your hot hole," Michael shared as his
- cock continued to fuck her sweet smelling honey pot."
-
- She reluctantly allowed him to remove his shaft from her
- treasure chest, as she quickly moved into a kneeling position to
- accept his cock again. It was fortunate that he did stop his
- assault when he did, as he felt his balls begin to tighten to
- their eventual climax. He wanted to make his pleasure and her joy
- last as long as it could. As she turned over, he watched her hole
- close, and she turned over and assumed the suggested position.
- She lower her nipple-crested breasts to the bed, raiser her tight
- ass cheeks and greased pussy in the air and said, "Put your thick
- cock in my tight, greasy cunt and fuck me like a dog."
-
- Michael lowered his stiff cock to her hairy, lust slit and
- inserted it as he began to talk to her, "Back your smooth ass up
- against my cock bone and open your pussy so I can drive my bone
- into your love slot, Peggy. I love to fill my hands with your
- buttocks. I want to drop my hot fuck load into your guts and hear
- you scream with desire. That's it! Point you sweet cheeks as me.
- Damn you tits look good hanging there and swinging like heavy
- sacks." Michael filled his hands with the flesh of her ass cheeks
- and drove his straining cock in and out of her tight pussy.
-
- Peggy's heavy breasts rested against the palms of his hands
- as the cock assault continued. Michael kissed her neck and
- periodically slipped his tongue into either ear. Peggy was
- senseless. At this point there was no romance. There was no
- conversation. There was no awareness of anything other than the
- raw animal instincts of fucking. Deep guttural grunts came from
- her mouth as her eyes rolled up into her head. Peggy bore down
- and pressed her gaping cunt and quivering ass cheeks as hard as
- she could onto Michael's raging cock and swollen balls.
-
- A series of staccato, helpless grunts escaped her lips as she
- began to cum like never before. Hearing this, smelling the sweet
- aroma of sex, feeling his bone deep inside of Peggy's belly and
- the sensation of Peggy's hard nipples torturing the palms of his
- hands, Michael pulled his bone from her spasm-ridden tunnel and
- began to shoot his thick cream on her pumping, wiggling ass
- cheeks. With one hand Michael ran his spurting cock up and down
- the crack of her ass spreading the hot cream on her
- finely-textured buttocks. With his other hand he reached around
- to her clit and began to furiously rub this swollen nub to
- lengthen her pleasure. Then he fell forward, sliding his bone
- into the deep crack of her hot cheeks and refilling his hands
- with her heavy breasts. Soon they both lay exhausted and
- apparently paralyzed.
-
- After they recovered, Peggy and Michael retired to the shower
- and cleaned the perspiration and scent of love from one another's
- body. Michael was soon recovered sufficiently to introduce Peggy
- to yet additional pleasures. Fantasy and hypnosis were wonderful.
- But now Peggy was armed with additional experiences to make the
- most of her time alone and with her husband.
-
- When Michael had left, Peggy went over to the bookcase where
- the stereo was and turned off the video tape recorder. Jim was
- going to get the show of his life when he came home. He probably
- didn't think she had the nerve. Now it was apparent.
-
-
- APPENDIX I
-
- SELF-HYPNOSIS INDUCTION TECHNIQUES
-
- WHAT IT IS
-
- One of the most common questions about hypnosis is, "Can I
- be hypnotize? The answer is, you already have been. I'll explain
- more about that later. However, in order to answer this question
- appropriately, one has to know what hypnosis is, and is not. Hyp-
- nosis is not sleep as we generally think of it. It is simply an
- altered state of consciousness. During hypnosis we put the body
- to "sleep" and increase the awareness or concentrate the mind in
- a specific direction. In a single word is can be defined as
- focus. Autohypnosis is nothing more than self induced hypnosis.
-
- It is only possible for the mind to become focused after the
- body does not serve to interrupt our focus. Therefore, our body
- feels relaxed, warm, sometimes slightly tingly and at rest. Many
- people describe it as the feeling of suspended animation. Our
- mind is completely aware of what is going on around us, it is
- receptive to suggestion and is still capable of making decisions.
- Many empirical studies have been done which suggest that 95% of
- the population can be formally hypnotized.
-
- When we are wide awake our mind is in the beta state. As we
- eliminate the influences of the body, such as the minor aches and
- pains or the muscle tensions, our mind drifts into an altered
- state called alfa. Once this state is reached we may then enter
- into the theta state. The theta state is hypnosis. With practice
- we can reach the delta state which is deep hypnosis.
-
- When I suggested that you already have been hypnotized, I
- was referring to common everyday states that are not tradition-
- ally considered hypnosis. If you have ever caught yourself
- daydreaming, you have reached the theta state. Your mind was
- focused and you were not aware of anything else around you. Have
- you ever driven your car to a destination you often drive to and
- wondered how you got there? Your mind was on something else. You
- were in the theta state. Some people allow the thump of the road
- or the divider lines in the road to put them to "sleep." This
- also is theta. Deep concentration associated with watching a
- movie or reading a book may also bring on the theta state. Vir-
- tually all of us have experience one or more of these phenomenon.
- If we have, we can be formally hypnotized.
-
- THE PROCESS
-
- Begin the process of autohypnosis by selecting a place of
- privacy and comfort; someplace free of noise and distractions. It
- is also helpful to use the same place as often as possible, be-
- cause as time goes on, it will become a reassuring and comforting
- place conducive to your efforts. Relax on a bed, a lounge chair
- or even the floor. Many people find that the bath tub is most
- conducive to self hypnosis; but exercise caution with the water
- level. It is unlikely you would drown, but it can be uncomfort-
- able to take in a breath full of water. When possible use the
- same position to allow your nervous system to let go.
-
- Dress in a manner that will support your efforts. You will
- want to loosen or remove any tight or restrictive clothing.
- Removal of any jewelry or eye glasses will also assist in your
- initial efforts. Once you have obtained a comfortable position,
- empty your mind of any exact thinking and let your mind wander.
- Simply relax and enjoy the feeling of doing and thinking nothing.
- Just be one with yourself.
-
- You may encounter influences that attempt to interrupt your
- relaxation such as recurring specific thoughts or muscle
- twitches. Simply push them out of your mind. If you continue to
- experience difficulty use a technique called muscle-tensing.
- Tense the large muscle groups such as the shoulders, back, but-
- tocks, legs, stomach, groin and arms, one group at a time. Tense
- them each tightly as you think "Tighten up!; Tense!" Then relax
- each group of muscles completely while you think "Relax; Let go
- completely!" Next think of your body as something that you are
- not attached to. Imagine it as if it were a limp doll laying on a
- cloud.
-
- Your eyes are the next element to deal with. Select a spot
- above eye level on the wall or ceiling and concentrate your focus
- on it. It does not have to be a specific spot. A general spot
- will do, but it should be above eye level. Think of your eyes as
- becoming tired but do not close them yet. Count backwards from
- ten to zero slowly and tell yourself that at the count of zero
- you will be able to close your eyes. As you close your eyes think
- that there is nothing that you care to see with them; that you
- are turning them inward to experience the inner you.
-
- Breathing plays a vital part in your experience. Place your
- hand on your stomach just below your chest. As you breath deeply
- using your tummy, you will feel the rumble of your breath under
- your hand. Don't use your chest to breathe. After you establish
- the correct deep-diaphragm breathing pattern, relax your hand and
- return it to your side. One third of the air we breathe goes
- directly to the brain. This will also serve to feed the mind and
- improve relaxation. When you exhale, your chest and tummy muscles
- will relax even more. The heart and internal organs also become
- relaxed, sending messages to the brain reinforcing relaxation.
-
- Now you are ready to relax completely. Stress and tension
- generally serve to squeeze the minor muscle groups, nerves and
- blood vessels. As you become more relaxed and relieve yourself of
- tension, the blood circulates better and sends more oxygen to the
- brain. You are now ready to give yourself suggestions that will
- deepen your relaxation. Start at the top of the head and work
- down the body to the feet. Tell yourself to "let go completely!"
- Suggest a heavy, limp feeling into each area of the body. You may
- even consider recording and playing it to yourself. Such a mes-
- sage could be as follows:
-
- "My scalp is relaxing completely. I can feel it reducing the
- tension on my face and the temples of my head. My eyes are
- heavy and at rest. All of the little muscles and nerves sur-
- rounding my eyes are completely relaxed. As I think of my
- head relaxing, I can feel it happen.
-
- "The muscles of my neck are continuing to completely relax.
- My chest is relieved of tension and my arms are limp and
- heavy. I feel a warmth and a heaviness in my back and in my
- buttocks. It's as if I am melting into the surface which
- holds me. My hips are heavy and there is a wonderful relaxed
- sensation running down my legs into my feet.
-
- "Now my entire body feels at rest and completely free of
- pressure. I feel no tension - just an enhanced feeling of
- relaxation and well-being."
-
- If you experience any area of your body that does not sur-
- render to this feeling of relaxation and well-being, turn your
- focus to that region and continue your suggestions. It will not
- take long to correct the situation. One method to assist with
- difficult areas is to imagine the area being painted with a local
- anesthetic with each breath you take. Soon you will be completely
- and totally relaxed.
-
- Another method commonly used is to focus on a particular
- part of the body, such as the hands or a single finger. If you
- clasp your hands together, feel the sensations associated with
- your interlocked fingers. Look at the nails, the cuticles, the
- joints of each finger or the lines in each digit. As your focus
- increases, the feeling in your fingers will begin to melt away.
- You will then notice that you can, at will, recall or heighten
- the sensation in your fingers.
-
- Continued practice in this focus effort will provide you
- with the ability to turn your hands off and on. This can quickly
- be transferred to other areas of the body in a natural manner. As
- we concentrate on one area of the body, the rest of the body
- naturally relaxes. Whether it is the former method, this method
- or any other variation, you are learning to focus your attention
- and the body naturally relaxes and will eventually be devoid of
- feeling.
-
- You are just about there at this point. The body has been
- put to "sleep," and the mind can become your focus. Imagine a
- very pleasant place from your childhood. If nothing immediately
- comes to mind, invent one. It could be a warm beach with sea
- gulls in the distance providing the music of nature. You are at
- rest on your back as you watch the puffs of clouds wander across
- the canvas of the sky. The sun is warm on your body. There is no
- decision that has to be made. There is nothing that you care to
- think about at this point. You simply want to relax your mind and
- create a passage to your inner self.
-
- At this stage of your induction you will feel a sense of
- well-being and a feeling of togetherness with yourself. You have
- hypnotized yourself.
-
- DEEPENING THE TRANCE
-
- There are many techniques that can be used to deepen the
- trance. With a little practice, you will be able to reach the
- above state within as little as five minutes on the average. Some
- people have trained themselves to enter this state within
- seconds. At this point your body is "sleeping" and your mind is
- relaxed and open to suggestion. Imagine yourself going down a
- long escalator, skiing down a long hill, or walking down a long
- sloping grass-covered hill. You can select that scenario which
- you are most comfortable with. You can't quite see the bottom,
- but you continue to go lower and lower.
-
- With each foot you descend, you are falling deeper and
- deeper "asleep." Soon you will come to realize that you are half
- of the way down. At this point, continue to repeat the words,
- "Deeper and Deeper - Lower and Lower. More relaxed than I have
- ever been before." Start counting backward from fifty to zero.
- With each number you will become deeper "asleep." When you reach
- the bottom, you will be more deeply asleep and more relaxed than
- you have ever been before.
-
- NOW WHAT
-
- Once you have reached the desired state of hypnosis, what
- will you do now? The answer is anything that you wish. In the
- initial several sessions, I recommend that you simply enjoy the
- sensation that you have created. Most people enjoy the sensation
- of deep relaxation. Your body becomes very lethargic and seems to
- melt into the surface which holds you. After this, it is impor-
- tant to determine what improvements you wish to make. Each of us
- have characteristics that we are happy with and others that we
- would like to change.
-
- Even at this level of hypnosis we can make remarkable ad-
- vances. We can correct our weight problems, quit smoking, get a
- more restful sleep, reduce or eliminate pain or correct some
- other habitual behavior. We can increase our sexual sensations,
- improve our memory or develop our waking focus in some other
- positive fashion.
-
- As you become advanced, positive and negative hallucinations
- can be created. We can create things that are not there or erase
- things that are. Each of our five senses can be hallucinated. We
- can give ourselves suggestions which make us actually see some-
- thing appear in a room. We can refrain from feeling something
- that we are touching. We can smell a roast beef dinner that isn't
- there. We can increase or decrease the room temperature. Most of
- these hallucinations require a great deal of work initially. Once
- it is acquired, it can be called upon at any time.
-
- The reduction or elimination of pain is a useful tool, espe-
- cially if we encounter some chronic situation in our lives such
- as arthritis. Going to the dentist has its draw-backs. We can
- easily desensitize our mouth and teeth. Simply remember the sen-
- sation of novocain that you experienced at one time or another.
- These sensations are filed away in the computer that we call our
- brain. Every sensation that we have ever had is filed in this
- computer. Once you develop the ability to turn on your anes-
- thetic, it can easily be reproduced at the dentist's office.
-
- These are only a few of the things that can be created with
- the use of self-hypnosis. Each phenomenon will be very real. Al-
- though virtually anything can be accomplished, I recommend that
- you begin slowly. Instead of creating an hallucination, try an
- illusion instead. The difference is, by way of example, turning
- something into something else. Visually, you may care to turn a
- coat rack into a tree. The first time you experience something
- like this, it will shock you. This shock factor will strengthen
- the foundation you are building for yourself. Soon you will be
- your own master. Weight loss, quitting cigarettes, memory reten-
- tion, improved sexual libido and pain reduction are only a few of
- the things that can be accomplished. Simply remember that you
- will get as much out of it as you put in. I'll try to share more
- with you in the future. For now - just relax and enjoy!
-
-
- °°°±±±²²² DAX GERMAN'S MIND SEX ²²²±±±°°°
- ÉÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍ»
- º I'd like to thank all of my friends who have been º
- º following my stories and who have asked for my advise. º
- º It is gratifying to be able to help so many people and º
- º turn them on in the bargain. Your comments and º
- º suggestions for story lines are welcome. Feel free to º
- º contact me on one of several BBS's that you find my º
- º stories on. My home base is the excellent Rusty & Edie º
- º BBS in Ohio. My handle is Dax Man. The Main number º
- º is (216)726-2620. I can also be contacted on Bill & Bob's º
- º BBS in Cleveland. º
- º º
- º I also publish a newsletter entitled "Take My Wife... º
- º Please!" It is a newsletter for, of and about swinging º
- º and spouse sharing. Your own articles and true stories º
- º would make the newsletter more interesting. º
- º º
- º Should you care to contact me via mail, write: º
- º º
- º Dax German º
- º P.O. Box 3533 º
- º Boardman, Ohio 44513 º
- º º
- º º
- ÈÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍÍͼ